m^^mm^mMmmmM •fe' l^^^i i ■ I^PII ' §^^| 1 1^^ i W^^M ' '■ l^Mjf^^K l IK' i^^l ' .rfC'tZ^™^"^ fflorttf U IttttiprailH ffitbrarg 3tliata. Jfrm ^ark THE CELTIC LIBRARY PRESENTED BY CLARK SUTHERLAND NORTHUP CLASS OF 1693 The date shows when this volume was taken. To renew this book copy the call No. and give to the librarian. HOME USE RULES :^^:^i "vte'^txssosexS&^itLii"" All books subject to recall All borrowers must regis- ter in the library to borrow books for home use. All books must be re- turned at end of college year for inspection and repairs. Limited books must be "►. returned within the four week limit and not renewed. Students must return all books before leaving town. Officers should arrange for the return of books wanted during their absence from town. Volumes of periodicals and of pamphlets are held in the library as much as possible. For special pur- poses they are given out for a limited time. Borrowers should not use their library privileges for the benefit of other j)ersons. Books of special value and gift books, when the giver wishes it, are not allowed to circulate. Readers are asked to re- port all cases of books marked or mutilated. Do not deface books by marks and writing. DA 950.22.C98 ""'""'">' "^""^ Liberator, ^AW ^\ o io/^ b THE LIBERATOR HIS LIFE AND TIMES '<^y Cornell University Library The original of this book is in the Cornell University Library. There are no known copyright restrictions in the United States on the use of the text. http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924028141111 [ T/ie Author resen>es the right of republication and translation.^ 'T _ L'^ 0^nne/f ^r? !~ -u:f ira/'. THE LIBERATOR HIS LIFE AND TIMES PREFACE. ) T is strange, but none the less true, that the majo- rity of Englishmen know far less about the real state of Ireland than they do about the state of continental countries. The result of this ignor- ance is an intellectual disability to appreciate a character like O'Connell's. We believe this ignorance arises from one cause, and from one cause only: it is impossible to form a correct judgment on any subject when the will is biassed by prejudice, and the incorrectness of the judgment will be proportioned to the extent of the prejudice. It has been our one special object throughout the pre- sent work to quote from English authorities for proof of all assertions made regarding English misgovernment of Ireland. Irishmen do not need such corroborative evi- dence ; but as we believe that this work will circulate as largely as other historical works by the present writer amongst Englishmen of the upper classes, we offer them, in ~WT PREFACE. proof of our assertions, such evidence as they can scarcely set aside. We are very far from wishing to add strife to strife ; but the elements of discord, which have stirred the waves of popular opinion for some eight hundred years and more, are slowly abating. It is true, indeed, that the gibbet and the triangle are no longer used to silence the cries of an oppressed nation, but Ireland is not spared the lash of the tongue, even by those whose position, as rulers of a king- dom which is said to be " united," should suggest a wiser, if not a more paternal course. The prejudice which prevents the calm and dispassionate consideration of Irish affairs and Irish character is the result, in some cases at least, of culpable ignorance. And yet, unfortunately for the national credit, and still more unfortunately for the national peace, those who are most ignorant are not uufrequently the most confident of the correctness of their conclusions. As an evidence of this prejudice, warping the opinions of a highly intellectual mind, I quote the following extract from the conclusion of Mr Lecky's essay on O'Connell, in his work on " The Leaders of Public Opinion in Ireland " : — " When to the great services he rendered to his country we oppose the sectarian and class warfare that resulted from his policy, the fearful elements of discord he evoked, and which, he alone could in some degree control, it may be questioned whether his life was a blessing or a curse to Ireland." The most cursory acquaintance with the history of Ire- DOfaoeig land during O'Connell's long and chequered career would surely prove the incorrectness of such a conclusion. No man was ever more opposed to " sectarian " warfare than O'Connell; and, indeed, Mr Lecky admits this himself in the earlier part of his essay, where he says — ■ " With, the exception of his advocacy of Eepeal, no part of his Irish policy injured him so much in the eyes of the English people as the opinions he hazarded about the Church ; but judged by the light of the events of our own day, they will be pronounced very reasonable and very moderate." How entirely true this statement is with regard to O'Connell's public career is well known, and the present work affords evidence. His moderation was the result of principle, since in his private correspondence he expresses himself as he did in public. When his religion was attacked he defended it with the vigour of a man who had a definite creed to uphold, but certainly no "sectarian warfare" resulted from his policy. Class warfare had existed ia Ireland too long, and that which pre-existed certainly could not " result " from a future cause. That he " evoked discord" can only be said of him in the sense in which it may be said that a man provokes a quarrel when he is obliged to fight for his rights. It would be quite as correct to assert that Tell evoked discord in Switzerland when he roused up the Switzers to resist a tyrannical oppressor. Mr Lecky concludes by doubting whether O'Connell's life was a blessing or a curse to Ireland, and yet we think ;!OC7gpo ,1 r» r. Mr Lecky would scarcely deny that O'Connell obtained emancipation for Ireland, and that emancipation was an act of justice. It is thus that prejudice leads Englishmen of the highest intellectual calibre to write, to think, and to speak of Ireland. There are two evils caused and fostered by this preju- dice. Conclusions are drawn on false premises, and, of necessity, acts follow which are more than injudicious. The Irish are admitted to be an intelligent race, even by their worst enemies ; they cannot fail to see the in- justice which is done to them day after day by educated Englishmen ; and they cannot fail to feel, and to feel keenly, that their misfortunes, to use a mild expression, which are not their own fault, are made a subject of ridi- cule by those whose first object, whose first duty, should have been to alleviate them. In the limits of a preface it is impossible to do more than to indicate subjects for consideration in connection with the work to which the preface is prefixed. We can, there- fore, only give Mr Lecky's incorrect estimate of O'Connell's character as a sample of the opinion of educated English- men. Having done so, we descend a little lower in the intellectual scale, and quote Mr Lowe's recent observations on Irish fisheries, as an example, and a most painful one, of the flippancy with which Irish grievances are treated, not only by some educated Englishmen, but by men who, virtue of their office, should be anxious to promote m h r^ «c Pi 4 PREFA CE. kindly feelings between Great Britain and Ireland, even should they not be bound by their position as members of Government to do acts of justice. One of the great outcries of the day is, that politics and religion should be treated as separate questions. We shall have a few words to say on this subject presently; but we presume no Christian man will deny the duty of practis- ing Christian charity in public life, or will deny that the circumstances of our birth were not under our own control. Mr Lowe might have been born a poor Claddagh fisher- man ; instead of holding the reins of government and receiving the freedom of boroughs, he might have been toiling along the wild Atlantic coast for a bare subsistence for wife and child. He might have been the victim of a God-sent famine, which left hearth and home utterly deso- late ; he might have lost his little all in that year of misery and anguish, which is perhaps the only Irish calamity which no man has ever dared to charge on the Irish them- selves. He might have been unwilling to beg ; he might have had an honest pride, which kept him from the work- house ; he might have loved his home, wretched as it was, and his sea-girt island, poor as she is, too well to emigrate to the great Irish empire in the West, where an honest day's wage can be had for an honest day's labour. In his trouble he might have gone to his parish priest— the poor man's only friend — and prayed him, for God's great love, to help him to the means of getting an honest living, how- ever humble. The priest would have replied, " I cannot help you ; the gentlemen who govern the country will not help you. The troubles of poor fellows like yourself used to be called sentimental grievances, there is another name for them now — they are called 'amusing grievances.' The Scotch fisheries are well protected by English gun-boats, and well assisted by the English Government : but you are only a poor Irish fisherman. You have at least a choice : emigrate, if you can get the money ; if you cannot, go to the workhouse." The Claddagh fisherman would have asked the reason of this strange inhumanity ; and it would not have added to his affection for English government to be told that the gentleman who found Irish misery so amusing admitted that he did not exactly understand what had caused it ; that he believed the bad harvests had ruined the Irish fisheries ; though, indeed, he did not think that could have been the reason ; that, in fact, he knew very little about it, though it certainly was his business to know ; and that all he seemed quite sure of was, that it was " amusing." The Claddagh fisherman, some few weeks after, might have seen— for Irishmen are all great readers — an old newspaper, in which he would have found the following extract, taken from a speech made by a Cabinet Minister at Glasgow, when he received the freedom of the city; a cursory perusal of it would at once explain the priest's PREFACE. " I will now enter on my last topic. I have made it last, because it is a little more amusing than those that preceded it. It is that Ireland has another grievance. (Laughter.) That grievance is this — the fisheries of Ireland have very much declined. I cannot say exactly why, but it is perhaps the reason given in a committee of the House of Commons, that they had given up the fisheries because they were so much discouraged by bad harvests. (Great laughter.) I don't think that could have been the reason, but, whatever is the reason, they come and ask me to lend them money on personal security — (renewed laughter) — the security of the fishermen and that of the priests, to lend money for nets and boats to resume these fisheries. Well, I said to them I was not in the habit of lending money in that way, and so the matter came to an end, and they assured me that if they had home rule it would be done at once. (Applause.)" He would have observed that the gentleman concluded his speech with this quotation : — " Only the actions of the just Smell sweet and blossom in the dust." And it might have occurred to him that a quotation from an older writer than Shakespeare would have suited his side of the question better. Has it not been written — " The just showeth mercy, and shall give." This habit of meeting Irish complaints with contempt, was reprobated again and again by O'Connell, and yet it still continues. Even if the Irishmen was still an " enemy," it would be unmanly to ridicule his misfortunes, when those misfortunes are, at least to a considerable a XIV PREFA CE. degree, the fault of his rulers. Such ridicule reflects most on him who uses it. It is indeed scarcely possible to take up any work, whether of fact or of fiction, in which Ireland is mentioned, without finding this spu-it of ridicule ; and sometimes its bitterness is more than a joke. At the present time an autobiography is dragging out its slow length in the pages of Fraser's Magazine, the sole object of which appears to be to throw contempt on Ireland and the Irish ; and the suggestion is made for the hundredth time, to try de- population, and rather to " populate the land with Chinese and reaping-machines, with monkeys, or any other animal but the Celt." The plan of populating Ireland with beasts has been partly tried, and does not seem to have given as much satisfaction to the proposers as they expected. How a country could be populated with " reaping-machines," is an enigma we do not pretend to solve. The plan of extermination was tried on a very large scale, and with very great success, in the year of grace 1654 ; but the results were contrary to expectation. A work has been written by an Irish gentleman, in which he gives statistics of the grand transplantation scheme which was then tried. The accounts are taken from no doubtful source, they are compiled from State-papers. But the result was, that when English soldiers were transplanted to Ireland, they were not at all more disposed to submit quietly to injustice, than the " Irish enemy " whom they had displaced. 1 PREFACE. A plantation of Chinese and reaping-machines would probably prove a failure also. But there is a j'et deeper depth to which some English- men descend when they write or speak of Ireland. The pages of Fraser's Magazine are defiled by the suggestion to " abolish juries, burn the Habeas Corpus, and erect a factory in the Lower Castle Yard for spinning halters and cat-o'-nine-tails." The suggestion may be intended as a joke ; we suspect it is so couched to hide an earnestness of which the writer has the grace, as yet, to be a little ashamed. But if gentlemen write such jokes, they must recollect that those to whom they would not give that name will write such things in earnest, and probably support their degradation of our common humanity by quoting higher authority. It is not long since a letter went the round of the provincial papers in England and Scotland, in which it was suggested, not that a cat-o'- nine-tails should be made, but that it should be used wherever an outrage was committed in Ireland, the parish priest to be the victim, because he was supposed to be cognisant of the offender through the confessional, and unwilling to give him up to justice. Are we returning to the dark ages ? The suggestion of deeds of blood and brutality is the first step towards their accomplishment when opportunity offers. But there is yet another class in England who do not suggest such measures for the pacification of Ireland DQgioeg I either in joke or in fact, but who seem, nevertheless, to consider that good advice is the one thing which Ireland requires. And this advice sometimes emanates precisely from those very persons who, for various reasons, are the very last individuals who should offer it. We take the opinions expressed by a recent article in the Contemporary Review as a sample. It may be said that opinions expressed in reviews, magazines, and newspapers are but the expression of an individual mind ; but this is very far from being the case. Those who write are persons who, either from circumstances or capability, express the opinions which others entertain. The greater number of people, both educated and uneducated, confine their read- ing to such books or serials as express their own senti- ments on religion or politics. Publishers and editors cater for the taste of their public. No doubt in many instances opinion is influenced by writers, but it is rarely formed by them. It might be supposed that Irish gentlemen were capable of taking care of their educational interests, and that if they required advice, they would scarcely seek it from a gentleman, however accomplished, who has changed his religion more than once. But as the advice has been given, we may consider it briefly as an expression of Eng- lish opinion on an important subject. From the day on which O'Connell obtained freedom of education for Irish gentlemen to the present hour, a certain PREFACE. party, and a large party, of English gentlemen have tried to fetter that freedom as far as it was possible for them to do so. In O'Connell's private correspondence with Dr MacHale, he reiterates his opinion that the education of Irish gentlemen should be confided to the clergy of their Church. If Irish gentlemen wish for such education, is it not a grave interference with the liberty of the subject to forbid it to them. In Mr Capes' article also, it may be remarked, in passing, that, while it is entirely free from the sarcastic spirit which disgraces so many English comments on Irish affairs, there is nevertheless a de Jiaut en has tone — a quiet conscious superiority. It is taken for granted that the Irish gentleman belongs to an inferior race, and that " we," the people of England, are free to deny or grant, as in our wisdom we think fit, with but scant reference to the wishes of the inferior being. The Irish gentlemen is treated throughout as a person who should submit with thankfulness to the regulations made by the superior wisdom of his English master. The Irish peasant is treated as part knave and part fool, and as altogether incapable of the exercise of even ordinary reason. Of the hundreds who have read Mr Capes' article in the Contemporary Review, few indeed will have read his long and scholarly Preface to the " Life of St Frances of Eome," published in the year 1855. In the Preface he wrote thus i' li 1^ of the Catholic clergy, at the conclusion of an exhaustive defence of miracles : — " Whetlier the Catliolic religion is true or false, it is beyond the limits of credibility that its ruling principle can be one of inten- tional deception. . . . The Catholic system must have fallen to pieces a hundred times over, if its chief ruler and his subordinates were mere tricksters, playing upon the credulity of a fanatical and besotted world." On the subject of miracles he argues forcibly; first, ao'ainst the Protestant opinion that Catholics are fools, and then, against the Protestant opinion that Catholics are all knaves. " If," he says, "we are sincere in our faith, it is impossible to suppose us willing to be imposed on." "Writ- ing of the lives of Saints, he says : — " Thus, too, I am myself engaged in a similar work, either laugh- ing in my sleeve at the credulity on which I practise, or submitting from sheer intellectual incompetence to be the tool of some wily Jesuit, who enjoins the unhallowed task." We leave Mr Capes to select either horn of the dilemma. Perhaps, he may appeal from Philip drunk to Philip sober ; but under any circumstances he should refrain, in common consistency, from offering his advice to Irish gentlemen. When English gentlemen have quite decided what reli- gious belief they really consider true — when they have decided whether they will believe in one creed, in three creeds, or in none — then, but not until then, should they offer any suggestion, or interfere with Irish gentlemen in the choice of a religion, or of educational guides. \l V. X)^^ r^r PREFACE. The struggle is a hopeless one. It will be better to abandon it, and to have peace. Irishmen only ask for justice. They do not want more ; they will not be satisfied with less. All through his long and stormy life O'Connell was breasting the waves of English injustice. The truth may be evaded, it may be denied ; but it is still truth. Day after day, week after week, year after year, he asked only for justice. It was granted, at least in a measure; yet, for all that, much more remains to be granted. If Englishmen would take pains to study Irish history, if they would make themselves acquainted with a life like O'Connell's, if they would calmly consider why he agitated, and for what he agitated, the future both of England and Ireland would be happier. But, in order to effect this desirable end, two things are necessary : first, that the student should divest himself, as far as possible, of insular prejudice ; and, secondly, that he should make himself acquainted with the facts of Irish history, not from the narratives of those who have dis- torted it to suit their own ends, but by weighing the state- ments of the oppressed as well as those of the oppressor. This view of the subject was ably treated in the North British Review for October 1869. It is well remarked that — " Those wlio are not resolved to be misled by a fragmentary literature, should diverge from the beaten path to seek its comple- ment, so that whatever judgment they may form at last may be formed after they have heard both sides." PREFACE. The habit of forming conclusions from the evidence of one party only, above all when that party is the one complained of, is neither wice or philosophical. It has done more to deepen and widen the gulf of bitterness between England and Ireland, than all the suspensions of the Habeas Corpus, or all the promulgations of Insurrec- tion Acts. The Irish naturally suppose that educated Englishmen have been at some pains to understand their real condi- tion, and when they find the facts of that state denied or ridiculed, they can only conclude that the denial or the ridicule has been the result of bitter prejudice, and an irradicable hatred. The lower class of Irish do not know, they would, perhaps, scarcely believe, that so many English gentlemen are so ignorant of the country to which they give so much good advice. "VVe doubt if even English premiers take pains to know the condition of Ireland as it is. Mr Gladstone may read the Times for information ; but the Times will not tell of landlord oppression or tenant wrong, unless some flagrant case comes before the public, which is forgotten almost as soon as it is read. He may read the Telegraph for sympathy ; but a ministerial organ is not likely to trouble the ministerial conscience with reproof. He may read the Standard to learn Conservative opinion ; he will find his Irish policy roughly handled, but he will know well that this is done chiefly from political motives. h \ What statesman ever troubles himself to read the Free- marHs Journal, or the Telegraph, or the Irishman, or the Cork Examiner or Herald, or the Northern Star, or the people's papers in Derry and Galway and Waterford and Clonmel ? And descending lower in the social scale, the ignorance increases ; the mass of middle class Englishmen know nothing of the state of Ireland, except through the grossest misrepresentation. What wonder, then, that the countries are "united" only in name, and that the sever- ance of this union is demanded by those who are hopeless of being understood ! We can here but draw attention to this subject, earnestly hoping that our efforts may not be in vain. There are thousands of honest, earnest, true-hearted English gentlemen, tradesmen, and mechanics, who would be as indignant as the Irish themselves if they could really understand the causes of Irish poverty, and consequently of Irish discontent. We have not space here to enter into details on this subject; but, as we have throughout this work given English opinion on Irish affairs, well knowing that Irish opinion would not be credited by some of our readers, we give briefly now some English statements on the causes of Irish discontent. The Irish are taunted and reproached, I must say cruelly, with their poverty ; yet, until the passing of the recent Land Bill, they were not allowed even a chance of bettering their condition. They were to make bricks, they were cried out against as idle, yet never a straw were they allowed ; nay, if they even attempted to find straw it was taken from them. Enough of Irish history is known in England to prove that the unhappy Irish peasant was not allowed to till the soil for himself, or even to practise any trade until the ^WS close of the last century. Every industrial resource was sternly forbidden ; how then could capital accumulate in the country? Sir John Davis said the state of the bond slave was better than the state of the Irish peasant, " for the bond slave was fed by his lord, but here the lord was fed by his bond slave." But it may be said, all this has passed away. We must not lay this flattering unction to our souls — no mistake \fj could be more fatal — and yet no mistake is more frequent. English gentlemen, with the best intentions, will express themselves utterly disgusted with Ireland, and will fling aside all thought of doing her justice, because, as they say, they have done so much, and she still complains. They have disestablished the Protestant Church in Ireland, but they cannot pardon us for saying that this disestablish- ment has not bettered the condition of the poor or middle classes one iota. Irishmen, too, cannot but know that that justice was done rather as a peace-offering at the shrine of public opinion than as special kindness to them. We are far from wishing to hear of the disestablishment of the Protestant Church in England ; but if it does not dis- ^. Ml integrate itself from utter inability to cohere in almost every point of doctrine, those who note the signs of the times on the political horizon, are freely predicting its speedy dissolution by Act of Parliament. The recent Land Bill has done a certain, or, perhaps it would be more correct to say, an uncertain amount of good in Ireland. But how much more needs to be done, is best known to those who have personal acquaintance with the miserable state of the Irish peasantry. There are ab- sentee landlords, who own thousands of acres of Irish land, whose one sole object seems to be to get the most rent they can from their half-starving tenantry. They may speak well, they may write well, they may enter cordially into every philanthropic scheme, except such as touch their own interests. Yet these men are pointed out as model landlords, because they visit their estates once, perhaps, in two or three years, for two or three weeks, because, at the order of an agent, whom the unhappy tenant dare not disobey, costly rejoicings are made for the visit ; but the landlord does not hear, and the agent does not care for, the "curses, not loud but deep," which precede and accom- pany the demonstration. Even if no other evil were done thereby, the with- drawal of thousands a year from the country, which is spent in a distant land, is in itself a most grievous in- justice. It is a natural law, that if you take crops from land you must pay nature back with interest. This k M--\ PREFACE. natural law holds good in political economy as much as in physical science. Men may not defy the divinely-im- posed conditions of nature, or if they do, they know the penalty ; but they do defy it when the penalty does not fall upon themselves. Again, the tiller of the land is the only trader who does not receive consideration in case of loss or failure. In some rare instances — and how rare they are Irish tenants best can tell — some consideration is made for bad weather and cattle plague, or other pro- vidential calamities; but, for the most part, there is no such consideration. The rent is demanded equally, be the crop more or less, and the unhappy tiller of the soil, who has already lived on almost famine fare, must only live on less. No country can prosper unless those who till the soil are permitted a suf3ficient remuneration for their labour, to enable them, in their turn, to encourage manufacturers. Chinese and reaping-machines might support absentee landlords in affluence, but they could not raise any country in the social scale. If English gentlemen can forget their manhood, and degrade their nationality, by attempting anything like a wholesale depopulation of Ireland, they would hear, not "Whisper in your ear, John Bull," but a thunder of in- dignation, which would soon break out into thunder of another kind. It is too late in the nineteenth century for such folly ; and as the folly is impractical, it would be w m{ PREFACE. better for the self-respect of those who utter it if they would keep silence for the future. Taunts like Mr Lowe's, and insults such as have dis- graced the pages of more than one English magazine, do more to widen the breach between England and Ireland, do more to increase expressions of Irish discontent, do more to make rebels, than the speeches of the wildest Fenian, or the leaders of the Irishman or Nation. To honest Englishmen who wish to know the true state of Ireland, we say. Read the Irish local papers. You will find that even at the present day the most cruel and capricious evictions are taking place; and you will find that whole tracts of land are reclaimed by honest and industrious peasants, only to have their rents raised as a reward for their labour. You will find, as the able writer of the article on the Literature of the Land Question in Ireland has said, " Opinions may vary as to points of policy suggested by the popular writers, and as to the gravity and bearing of particular statements ; but it is clear that a thorough understanding of the Irish question cannot be obtained without a knowledge of the existence of this literature, and a careful study of it." In this article also the writer fully exposes the dealings of two agents, both magistrates. If Irish evidence will be accepted, we would refer to the statements of the " Meath Tenant Defence Association," as published in the Drogheda Argus, and signed by the Very tiauugo PREFA CK Kev. John Nicolls, P.P.V.G-., and his curate, the Rev. P. Kenny, CO., published in the month of February 1872. By law, the Irish are free to choose and practise their own religion, yet there is an increasing attempt, on the part of English writers at least, to deprive them of that liberty. If it were possible to find any individual who could look at the whole question, and consider both sides, his judgment would surely be that, until English gentle- men claimed personal or Divine infallibility of belief, they should not interfere with the belief of others. If the Catholic is aggressive in his religion, he is at least con- sistent. He believes in the Divine origin of his Church, and therefore he obeys her commands, and does his best to induce those who are without the fold to enter into it. The Divine origin of the Catholic Church may be denied ; but granted a man believes in it, there is no inconsistency, logical or otherwise, in his acting on his belief. With the Protestant, whether he protests for a State Church or no Church, for three creeds or for none, the case is entirely different. Believing that all men are left to choose their religion, and not being able to deny that such choice Ipads to the selection of the most opposite forms of belief, he should, in common consistency, leave the Catholic to follow the dictates of his conscience, without even so much as verbal molestation. The strife between the world and the Church has never raged so fiercely as at the present day. It is the practice m to speak as if politics and religion were two separate sub- jects, which should be kept carefully apart; and yet the two subjects always have been, and always will be, insepa- rably united while time shall last. Where there is simple misapprehension on the subject, it arises from not clearly understanding what politics really are. Where there is a particular bias, as in the case of those who are constantly declaiming against the interference of priests in politics, the case is different. Politics are taken simply to mean the rivalries of certain opposite parties for power. Even taking this lowest view, religion must enter into the question. In England we find Mr Gladstone taunted again and again with subservience to the Irish hierarchy on the Education question, for the purpose of keeping himself in power. The entire politics of the day in Germany turn on religious questions, and Bismarck, after expelling the Jesuits, is occupying himself with an attempt to get rid of the Catholic hierarchy. " We may wonder at the authority the Pope exercises, and we may regret it ; but there it is, a patent and incontest- able fact."^ So patent and incontestable is this fact, indeed, that one might have supposed the world would have learned to submit quietly to it, if we did not know that an eternal enmity between the world and the Church has been predicted by the Eternal Truth. 1 Standard, Oct. 1, 1872. 'Mn \% PREFACE. If we take the word " politics " in the largest sense, we shall see at once that we cannot separate politics from religion. Politics are part of the ethics of government ; to govern implies not merely to make war or peace, but to rule and regulate all the internal constitution of a king- dom. How can such ruling be separated from religion? Statesmen must either govern the state under some kind of submission to a Supreme Power, or they must govern it as infidels. Human beings, considered in the aggregate, are the subject-matter of political science ; when amongst, say, four millions of human beings, there are two or three different forms of religious belief, and when this religious belief is of a practical character, the politician cannot govern without special reference to it. If this subject were more carefully considered, more than half the matter which has appeared in print on the subject of the interference of the Catholic clergy in politics, would be treated as simply useless. If Englishmen do not know, they ought to know, that Catholics cannot separate politics from religion. There is a moral aspect in every political question; the Catholic receives his moral teaching from his Church ; it is then absurd to ask him to consider such questions apart from such teaching ; it is childish to bandy such names as " priest-ridden " and " Ultra- montane." Protestants choose to call the Irish peasant priest-ridden, simply because they cannot understand the principle upon which the Irish peasant acts. Because he is consistent; because, believing a certain faith, he acts on his belief, he is made an object of scorn, or at best, is looked upon as an incomprehensible being. So it is with those of the higher classes who are spoken of as being Ultramontane : they certainly do believe in the authority of the successor of Peter "over the mountains;" it is a fact, there is no use in quarrelling with it ; nor is there any wisdom in alleging any reason for it except the true one. It is useless to devote pages of a serial to combative articles on the Irish Roman Catholic laity, to talk of their being under the rule of an " arrogant and domineering priesthood " in one breath, and, in the next, to say that they " detest and dread " the priest, because he " flatters the prejudice of the peasantry."^ All such writing is simply the result of ignorance. There are indeed, unhappily, some few Irish Catholics who have lost the freshness of their faith, who are half ashamed of the religion which they are still afraid to forsake. Perhaps fifty such gentlemen might be found in all Ireland — we doubt if there are ten — but they generally come prominently forward; they are complimented largely on their liberality and their spuit by their Protestant friends ; and they are gratified by the compliment. They may proclaim their own opinions, but they have no right ' " The Irist Komaa Catholic 'La,ity."—Fraser's MagaziiieioT October. ^=1- -«^ «a " I 4 I'll PREFACE. to speak for others, or to give a false impression of their religion. The subject of Education is not unlikely to be a minis- terial crisis in the next session. If the Catholic nobility and gentry, the barristers and magistrates, of Ireland, were as anxious to have their children educated by Pro- testants as some persons suppose, they have every facility for obtaining such education for them. It is, therefore, idle to taunt them with moral cowardice because they follow their ecclesiastical superiors in obedience to their conscience ; rather should the taunt be levelled against those who, while still claiming the name of Catholic, have ceased to be Catholics in unity or in practice. It is worse than an insult to assert that the Catholic gentlemen of Ireland admire the " manly courage " and " fervid elo- quence" of Mr Justice Keogh at Galway, and that they agree with him in denouncing " the tyranny of the bishops, the violence, dishonesty, and equivocation of the priests." We have yet to learn that it is "manly" to attack those who could not defend themselves, or that rant is " fervid eloquence." It might be supposed that those who write for the public would take at least some little pains to make themselves acquainted with public opinion, would be at some pains to make themselves acquainted with the previous history of those whom they commend, and with the sentiments of those whose true opinions they profess to know by some mysterious species of intuition. N PREFACE. "With regard to Mr Justice Keogh, he had undoubtedly a right to change his mind hoth on political and religious questions, but his English admirers have no ground for honouring him as a consistent defamer of the priesthood or eulogist of a certain class of landlords. The truth is, that the great majority of English writers are entirely ignorant of what is well known to every man, woman, and child in Ireland; or possibly, in some cases, they find it convenient to ignore what it does not suit their purpose to remember. We would ask the thousands of honest-hearted Englishmen who have taken the judicial harangue of Mr Justice Keogh for gospel to read a history of his career, published and circulated from one end of Ireland to the other. In the year 1851 this gentleman published a pamphlet, in which he revised a speech of his own, made at the Athlone Banquet, and from this speech, as published by himself, we give the following extract : — " I see here the venerated prelates of my Church — first among them, 'the observed of all observers,' the illustrious Archbishop of Tuam, who, like that lofty tower which rises upon the banks of the yellow Tiber, the pride and protection of the city, is at once the glory and the guardian, the decus et tutamen of the Catholic religion, joining with the tried and faithful representatives of the people, who, after each in his oven locality receiving the approbation of his constituents, have done me the great honour of attending this banquet, to testify that I too was one, even though the humblest that number, who, in a time of great trial, were found true to country, their honour, and their God." In the same speech he denounced the landlords of Ireland as a "heartless aristocracy," as "the most heartless, the most thriftless, the most indefensible landocracy on the face of the earth," and as men who have made Ireland " a howling wilderness." It is conveniently forgotten, too, that Mr Justice Keogh made a famous declaration — in which he invoked the name of Grod in the most solemn manner again and again — to con- vince the Irish people of his sincerity to the national cause, a sincerity of which some keen-sighted gentlemen had their doubts. It is forgotten also, that on the 2d of April 1853, he spoke of the Catholic bishops and clergy as his "revered friends." But there is a yet more startling phase in the career of this gentleman whom so many English writers are de- lighted to honour. If they praise his Galway utterances as "manly" and " fervid," they must surely give the same praise to his speech at Athloue, where, according to the statement of the Lord-Lieutenant of the day, he distinctly recommended assassination. The subject was brought before the House of Lords on the 10th of June 1853, by Lord Westmeath. He said : — "Mr Keogh, standing on the right hand of that candidate (Cap- tain Magan), spoke to the audience, the mob, in broad day, in the streets, the words which he should presently read for their lordships — words which had been heard by three magistrates of the county, and which they were ready to corroborate on oath. At a place called Moate, from Magan's committee-room, Mr Keogh said : 'Boys, the days are now long and the nights are short. In autumn the days will be getting shorter and the nights longer. In winter [or November) the nights will be very long, and then let every one remem- ber who voted for Sir R. Levinge.' It was rumoured that vacancies were about to occur on the Irish. Bench, and that Mr Keogh was not unlikely to succeed to one. Though it might be alleged that Mr Keogh was not Solicitor- General when he made the speech to which he (the Marquis of Westmeath) referred, he wished to know whether any person who would attempt to advance any purpose, whether political or social, by such means, was fit to be placed on the Irish Bench ? " Lord Derby said : — " The noble Earl (Aberdeen) saj's he knows nothing about that election speech, and, of course, I am bound to believe him ; but it appears to me to show a great ignorance — I do not mean the word offensively — but, at any rate, a great absence of knowledge in the noble Earl not to have known that, at the time when Mr Keogh was made Solicitor-General, he was accused of having made that speech. The county of Westmeath is one in which Mr Keogh has not a foot of land. He was acting there as a leader or partisan of what is called the Liberal interest in Ireland — liberal enough in some respects, but illiberal in others — and in that capacity, having been a member of the former parliament and a candidate for a seat in the next, and intending to make his support valuable to the Govern- ment, he is reported to have warned the people that the nights toere then short and the days long, that the time was coming when the nights v)ould be long and thedays short, and that that would be the time at which any person who might vote for Sir R. Levinge for Westmeath ought to hole out for what might follow. And, if I am not much mistaken, there was a recommendation that the people of that county should collect together and go into the town of Athlone, for which he was himself a candidate, armed with shillelaghs, and take care to use them when they got there. This may have been totally incorrect ; but if this, or anything like it, was said by Mr Keogh so openly and I wumnj publicly that it was a matter of general notoriety, I say it dis- qualified that honourable and learned gentleman from being put into any situation in any government in which, in the slightest degree, he might be called on to suj^port, or nominally to support, the adminis- tration of the Icciv." Mr Keogh denied the charge, but the Protestant rector of Moate, the Rev. Mr Hopkins, wrote to Lord Westmeath to maintain that he had used the words, and his testimony was supported by the solemn assurance of several magis- trates, and of two members of the Society of Friends. How Mr Justice Keogh would have dealt with such testimony — had it been offered in the Gal way trial, we all know; with what withering scorn, with what scathing denunciation, with what " fervid eloquence," would he not have borne down upon the unhappy priest who might have allowed such words to escape his lips ? His fine sense of justice would have been horrified, his power of denunciation would have been exhausted; with that exceptional refinement and delicacy which characterises his judicial utterances, he would have imitated the tone and the manner of clerk or laic who had dared to commit such an outrage on the honoured aristocracy of the land. He would have forgotten in his just indignation to criticise the grammar of his victim, to give historical lectures, or to comment on his rhetoric. His grand thirst for justice would have con- trolled all the petty pride which might tempt him to the little vanity of a display of superior education and knowledge ; the victim would have been held up to the scorn of the s.^ [(^ PREFACE. United Kingdom, would have been indicted without a day's delay for seditious utterances. Mr Keogh's apology for his observations at Moate were conveyed in the form of a letter to the Duke of Newcastle, in which he said — " It did not occupy five minutes, and I was not reported so as to enable me to refer to it. I have no recollection whatever of using any language even similar to that attributed to me ; but my memory may fail me as to the precise words used in the heat and excitement of election occurrences, and I trust, therefore, rather to the evidence of friends who were present, and the inherent improbability of my expressing sentiments which 1 never entertained rather than to my own recollection." The Dublin Evening Mail, 2d June 1853, an Orange organ, observed that " the seditious speech was no longer denied, but it was only a little one." Lord Eglinton read for the House a letter from Arthur Brown, Esq., J.P., in which he said — " I wish (as the magistrate who took the declaration of James Burke), to satisfy you that every word in that declaration is true, and that at least twenty gentlemen of independence and station (among them the rector of Moate, the Rev. Mr Hopkins), are ready and willing to support the truth of that deposition by their evidence on oath. The gentlemen in question were present on the occasion, heard the words so delivered, and there can be no more doubt of their utterance than of any other truth which cannot be disputed." We do not desire to pursue the unwelcome theme further. Our one object is gained if we can induce those English gentlemen who shall read this work to ask them- selves why Irish Catholics of all classes, not only in Ire- land, but throughout the world, are juBtly indignant at the Galway judgment, and, what is, if possible, of far greater importance, why Ireland is not prosperous with English rule. It is frequently believed that " things have changed since O'Connell's time," that "the Irish are a discontented race whom nothing can satisfy," that " their grievances are sentimental." Certainly during O'Connell's long and noble career he obtained much justice for Ireland, certainly much has been done lately ; but while much yet remains to be done, it is neither right for English honour, nor safe for English prosperity, to refuse all that Ireland needs in order to be prosperous and content. The Irish peasantry are not in a prosperous condition ; and while the Irish hear their clergy ridiculed, and their conduct basely maligned and misrepresented, with the full approbation of the great majority of English writers, there can scarcely be peace between the two countries. At a meeting of the clergy of the diocese of Galway, the following solemn protest was put on record : — " We deem it our duty to record our solemn protest, not only against the judgment itself, but, for the information of the public and the Imperial Parliament, who had no opportunity of witnessing the strange scene, against the gross impropriety of manner attend- ing its delivery, which we have no hesitation in describing as a desecration of the sanctuary of justice, shocking to the feelings of every impartial listener. We leave the public to judge of this, whom, from personal observation, we assure, that the delivery of PREFA GE. xxxvn the judgment, whicli occupied nearly eight hours, was but a con- tinued paroxysm of rage, seemingly ungovernable — one uninter- rupted scene of roaring, screaming, foaming, violent striking of the desk veith clenched fist, occasional walking backward and forward, with wig flung aside, mimicry of adverse witnesses, fulsome adula- tion of landlords and gentry, of which no printed report could give any idea whatever." So long as there shall be any distinction between the administration of justice in England and in Ireland, so long will the two countries remain disunited. So long as English public opinion of Ireland is governed by prejudice, there can be little confidence. Let Englishmen show them- selves ready not only to do justice, but to speak justice. We cannot conclude this preface without acknowledging our obligations to those gentlemen who have placed valu- able documents, private papers, and letters at our disposal for the present work. To his Grace the Archbishop of Tuam we are especially indebted for the use of his long private correspondence with the Liberator, and for the copies of the few of his own letters to O'Oonnell which he has preserved. His Grace had intended to publish this correspondence himself; but, with his usual disin- terested generosity, he transferred it to the present writer on hearing that she was about to publish this work. We are indebted also to the Most Rev. Dr Purcell, Arch- bishop of Cincinnati, for some documents on the sub- ject of slavery, which, with some other papers, are reserved for another work. We owe him thanks, too, for his words A V of encouragement and for "help, whicli has not limited itself to words.^ We have to thank P. J. Fitzpatrick, Esq., J. P., for the use of a valuable collection of old newspapers, and for advanced sheets of his forthcoming work, " The Life of Dr Lanigan," the well-known Irish ecclesiastical historian, and the consistent and ardent opposer of the Veto. To Maurice Lenihan, Esq., J.P., Limerick, we are obliged for a very valuable collection of private papers, of which we hope to make more use in another work, and for the original of the King of Bavaria's letter to O'Connell. To Isaac Butt, Esq., M.P., we are indebted for the appendix to Chapter XV., and for his interest in our work. To Sir John G-ray, M.P., we are obliged for the narratives of his s A sample of the contradictory charges made against Catholics occurred lately in America. The Catholic clergy had been again and again taunted with indifference to literature ; nuns had been represented agaia and again as either half imbecile, or wasting their lives in useless and frivolous employments, unless they happen to make their work public as Sisters of Mercy. Yet there are few Orders in the Church in which the religious are not engaged actively and unceasingly in the great and noble work of education ; and even the most highly educated of these religious must continue to study both history and science, in order to impart the laiowledge of both, as well as the lighter accomplishments which her pupils require, to fit them for their places in society. The charge of intellectual inactivity is about the most groundless which ignorance has made, and which prejudice persists in keeping up. Every nun who teaches the higlier classes must teach history, and must write notes for her classes on history, if she wishes to teach it thoroughly. Nor can she teach logic without explaining politics ; and though the angry discussions of the politics of the day cannot be heard in the >". /r'F'^ ^ prison life, and to Lady Gray for assisting in procuring them. To P. J. 0' Carroll, Esq., we are indebted for news- papers relating to O'Connell's trial, and we are especially indebted to J. Leyne, Esq., of the Registration Office, Dublin, for the O'Connell pedigree at the end of the work, and for the notes appended thereto. Our special thanks are also due to Mitchell Henry, Esq., M.P., for a copy of his speech in the House of Commons on the 25th of July 1872. Each part of the judicial harangue is carefully examined therein, and triumphantly refuted. This speech is all the more remarkable, as it comes to us from a Protestant gentleman. Those who strive to persuade themselves and others that Catholic conventual class-room, the wliole subject of politics, in their highest and truest sense, must he explained. Even at the risk of mating this note very much longer than it was intended to he when commenced, we would call attention to the discussion going on at present in the English school hoards, where it is found that history cannot he taught apart from religion. Not long since Mr Arnold said he would not send Protestant children to a Catholic school. The school-hoard solicitor replied that the religious instruction ceased at half- past nine in the morning ; but Mr Arnold answered that the elements of religious education were sometimes taught in other forms. The reports of the BngUsh Poor School Committee speak expressly on the matter ; and Canon Oakley, in his discussions on this subject in the Catholic papers, states that a " distinguished Protestant Government inspector " says that it may be necessary hereafter to proscribe history during the period of secular instruction. A little common sense, indeed, would show that it is almost impossible to teach any subject except pure mathe- matics, without giving at least a bias to the pupil's mind on religious questions. i.^ gentlemen secretly admire the denouncer of their religion, and the reviler of their clergy, would do well to recollect that there are many Protestant gentlemen who have had the courage and justice to express their disgust for such a degradation of the bench in Ireland. Mr Henry, being a large landed proprietor, was selected for special compli- ments, an honour which he scorned as it deserved. But Mr Henry's relatives, though they had no connection whatever with G-alway, or the Galway judgment, were selected for comment; and as his brother happened to be a priest and a convert, the judge, to enhance his rhetoric, and we must suppose to pander to the class in England to whom he knew the judgment would be acceptable, gave him the title of Jesuit. As we fear that many, to whom it would be of most ser- vice, may not see Mr Henry's able pamphlet, we give the following extracts, as an evidence of Protestant opinion on the subject, from an able and educated man : — " Yes, Mr Speaker, I charge Judge Keogh with deliberately out- raging the rehgious feelings of a religious people j and there is no one passage in his harangue which has given so much offence, and occasioned so much consternation, as his sneers at the efficacy of prayer. " Go among the peasantry of Ireland, and your greeting, from the bottom of their hearts, is ' God save you ; ' visit them in their sick- ness and sorrow, when their crops have failed and hard hunger knocks at their door, and their commentary is, ' God is good.' Do them a service, and the highest reward they can promise you— not in meaningless words, but out of the sincerity of their religious QssQ fOl, nature — as I have heard a thousand times, is, 'We will pray for you;' for this people of the West pray not with their lips only — they believe in prayer; they believe that they have a Friend in Heaven, who will at last redress their wrongs and vindicate Himself to them. And yet, sir, before such a people, Judge Keogh, from the judgment-seat, and clothed in the official ermine, retails a stale and ribald jest, and fathers it withal on a priest, to show that it is no use their praying for rain unless the wind changes. " It is almost incredible. When he calls a Galway priest ' this insane disgrace to the Roman Catholic religion,' I cannot help ask- ing what religion he owns himself, and whether he disgraces it or not, and whether he is sane 1 " We liave mentioned elsewhere the obligations to the Rev. John O'Hanlon, CO., for the record of O'Connell's last days, which will be found at page 756, and to the Rev. M. Close for a verbatim copy of this interesting document. To Mr Close I am indebted for much help in my literary labours, given with so prompt courtesy, which enhances their value. We may also observe, for the national credit, that we have found the proprietors of Webb's Library, in Dublin, most obliging in supplying works of reference. We can confidently recommend this library to students. It was first brought to our notice by several Catholic clergymen. The proprietors are, we believe, Protestants — another evi- dence, were it needed, that the Catholic clergy are readers of a high class of literature, and that party prejudice is confined now, as it was in the time of O'Connell, to a class whom nothing will satisfy except Orange ascendancy, and 11 ■iTl Political Situation at the time of O'Connell's Birth. — His Pedi- gree — Paul Jones — Smuggling iu Kerry — English. Op- pression — O'Connell's Affection for his Mother, and Pride of Family — Darrynane Abbey — The Clan O'ConneR — O'Connell's Early Aptitude for Letters — His First School- master — The Crelaghs — Father O'Grady — At School in Cork — Education in France — Early Hatred of England — Eeign of Terror — Louis XVIII. and the Old Irish Brigade — General Daniel Count O'Connell, . . . 3-58 CHAPTER IL EARLY DATS AND FIRST IMPRKSSIONS. 1790-1800. The French Revolution and the Irish Rebellion Compared — Louis XIV. and George III. — English Opinions on Irish Policy— Louis XVI.— The Two Sheares— St Omers— O'Connell and the Priesthood — His Opinions of the French Revolution — Interview with Robert Owen — At Lincoln's Inn — Origin of Constitutionalism — Catholic Church Con- servative — The English and Irish Catholics Contrasted — Early Toryism — Hardy's Trial — Home Tooke — The Georges and the Stuarts — Rise of Democracy — American War — Benjamin Franklin — The Irish in America, . 61-100 CHAPTER III. ENTRY ON PUBLIC LIFE — POLITICAL SITUATION. 1775-1797. Political Troubles in England — Attack on the King — Fondness for Field Sports — Fever — First Visit to Dublin — Englisli Policy with Ireland — Forced Attempt at Legislative Jus- COXTEJ^TS. tice— Causes and Character of the Irish Eebellion — ^^°^ Grattan — Lord Charlemont — Ireland in Arms — Alarm in England— "Wants of Ireland— Mr Fox— Eepeal of Act VI. Geo. I.- — Causes of the Euin of Irish Independence — Eng- lish Bribery — Grattan's' Letter, .... 103-156 CHAPTEK IV. CAUSES OF THE lEISH BEBELLION. 1790-1800. The Northern Whig Club— The United Irishmen Club— Catho- lic Address to the King — Political Commotions — Treachery of Pitt — Lord FitzwiUiam, the Catholic Question, and the Beresfords — Maynooth Established — The Orange Society — Catholic Clergy — Overzeal of O'Connell — Arrests — List of Suspected Persons — Lord Comwallis' Administration — The Cromwell Policy — State of the Peasantry — Testimony of Mary Leadbetter, ..... 159-194 CHAPTER V. THE BAE AND POLITICS. 1798-1801. First Circuit — At the Bar — Jerry Keller — Bar Stories — Promise of Success— Clear Ideas of Fox — The Irish Parliament — The Union— Policy of Pitt — Bribery— The Priests- Concussion in Voting — Letter of Mr Luke Fox — The Bar and the Union — " The Anti-Union " — First Speech — Anti- Union Resolutions — Personal Appearance — Grattan and Pitt— Personal danger, ..... 197-254 CHAPTER VI. PUBLIC SPIRIT AND POPULARITY. 1802-1810. On Circuit — In Court — Bar Anecdotes — Marriage — On Guard — Fresh Risings and Revenges — Catholic Church — Catho- lic Priests and Protestant Clergy — Maynooth — The Veto — Pole — Wellesley — Castlereagh — Plain Speaking — Love of Justice — Resolution to Petition — Effects of the Union — Demand for its Repeal — Speech — Petition — The Hier- archy — The Protestant Bishop of Meath— The Edinburgh Eevie-vv — Cobbett — Lift into Popularity, . . 257-313 CONTENTS. CHAPTEE VII. PROFESSIONAL AND POLITICAL SUCCESSES. 1808-1812. Orange Outrages — Religious Persecution — Intolerance in the p*^ob Army — Adventures on Circuit — Another Affair of Honour — Professional Successes — Speech at Limerick — Happy- Allusions — Address from Dingle and Reply — Catholics Entertaining Protestants at the Festive Board — The Government and the Catholic Association — Mr Wellesley Pole — Addressing the Prince of Wales — Speeches on the Address and Conduct of Pole — Mr Perceval — Political Dissension among Catholics — Right of Assembly — Arrest of Lord Fingal — Shelley — English Injustice ^Father Dan — At Limerick and Cork, .... 317-353 CHAPTEE VIII. EXPOSURES OF PUBLIC MEASURES AND PUBLIC MEN. 1812-1813. English Administration of Irish Affairs — Party Rule — No- Popery Cry — Assassination of Mr Perceval — The Prince of Wales — The Witchery Resolutions — Speech — The Orange Faction — The Landlords and the Tenantry — Effective Speech — Denunciation of Orangeism — A National Debt — Style of Speech — At his Zenith — As a Raconteur — Anec- dotes of Jerry Keller and Lord Clare — Parson Hawkes- worth — Administration of Justice — The Dublin Evening Post — At Home — Letter to Landor — Trial of John Magee — The Prosecution and Prosecutor — The Reply, . 357-419 CHAPTEE IX. COURAGE AND PATRIOTISM. 1813-1819. The English Catholics— The Duke of Norfolk and Dr Milner — Castle Browne and the Jesuits — Peel and Dr Kenny — Public Honours — Duelling and Duellists — The Irish Catholic Aristocracy — D'Esterre, his Challenge and Fatal Duel — Agrarian Outrages — Rev. John Hamilton, his Plots and Tools — Affair of Honour with Peel — Peel's Gift to Ireland, ....... 423-450 CHAPTEK X. LOYALTY TO GOD AND THE KING. 1820-1822. Panegyric on Grattan — Outrage at Kilmainham— Haroourt ^^°^' Lees— " Pastoral Letter" for 1821— First Appearance of SMel— Mr Plunket— Analysis of Mr Pkmket's Bills- Spiritual Functions and Freedom of the Clergy — Pro- testant Bigotry— George IV. and Queen Caroline— Royal Visit to Ireland — Loyal Eeception at Dublin — The Irish People — Presentation of O'Connell at Court — Irony of Lord Byron — Wellesley and his Irish Policy — Orange Orgies — The Beefsteak Club interfered with, and its Revenge — Wellesley and the Orangemen — A Catholic Triumph, 453-482 CHAPTEK XL CATHOLIC ASSOCIATION — ITS FOEMATION AND DEFENCE. 1822-1827. Flood and Connar — Cross-examination of Flood — Plunket and Hart — Formation of Catholic Association — Priests and People brought into Action — First Meeting — The Inexor- able Purcell — The Penny-a-month Scheme for Liberating Ireland — Grand Aggregate Meeting — The Conversion Mania — The Pope and Maguire Controversy — Abortive Prosecution of O'Connell — The Duke of York's " So-help- me-God" Speech — The Ring's Speech and the Association ■ — Lords Liverpool and Brougham — O'Connell in London — Lords Palmerston and Eldon — The Ladies — O'Connell's Popularity — Aims of the Association — Another Challenge — Shiel — Canning, ...... 485-514 CHAPTER XII. o'CONNELL AND THE CATHOLIC HIEEAECHY. 1827-1835. Commencement of Correspondence with Dr MacHale — Priestly Co-operation — A New Era — Sketch of Dr MacHale's Life —Sketch of Dr Doyle's Life— His " Vindication of Catho- CONTENTS. njuuuu lies "— Dr Doyle and the Lords' Committee— Honest Jack ''ags Lawless— Henry Grattan— Mr O'Gorman Mahon— Scene inthe«House"— Steele— Mr Barrett— Mr Ray, . .517-534 CHAPTER XIII. KING DAN. 1825-1829. England's Answer to Ireland's Cry for Justice— Decline since the Days of Henry VIII.— Ireland a Necessity for Eng- land—A Catholic Triumph — Address to the Catholics of Clare— Excitement and Agitation— Consternation.in Eng- ■ land— Monster Meeting at Ennia— Scene at the Hustings, the Sheriff and O'Gorman Mahon— The Voting Day— Mr Vandaleur and his Tenants— Return of O'Connell— Speech of Shiel— The Chairing— Excitement in England— The Bishops and Priests— Oflicial Irritation— King Dan— The Leicester Declaration- Letter of Wellington — The Eman- cipation BiU Passed— O'ConneU's Right to a Seat Disputed At the Bar of the House— Re-Eleotion— Smith O'Brien — Enthusiasm, ...... 537-578 CHAPTEK XIV. PAELIAMENTAEY LIFE AND COEEESPONDENCE. 1829-1839. The Waterford Election — Montalembert and O'Connell — Let- ters to the People of Ireland— Lord Leveson Gower— Pal- merston and Wellington- History and Politics— The Emancipation Act not Followed by the Millennium- Exasperation of the Orangemen and Distress among the Peasantry— Temporary Arrest of O'ConneU— Letter to Dr MacHale— Anti-Tithe Riots— In Parliament— Lord Al- thorpe and Shiel — O'ConneU's Motion for Repeal — Cathedrals— Letter— Melbourne and O'ConneU— Disraeli and the O'Connells— Letter— Lyndhurst's Attack on the Irish— Banquets— Speech of Dr Machale— Letter— O'Con- nell undertakes a Retreat— Reception at the Abbey— Letters— Entertained in London — Defies the House- Letters, 581-666 CONTENTS. CHAPTER XV. AGITATION FOR REPEAL. 18.39-1843. The Eepeal Movement Projected — Correspondence, explaining Ideas and Plans, with Dr MacHale — Eepeal Association Formed — Discouraging Start — Repeal Meetings in the South and North — General Election, O'Connell Unseated • — Elected Lord Mayor of Dublin — Attacked by Shrews- bury — The Eepeal Year, par excellence — The Association, Terms of Membership and Card — Peel and Eepeal — Mon- ster Meetings at Ennis and Mullaghmast — European Fame — O'Connell and the Society of Friends — Letters to Dr Machale, ...... 669-702 CHAPTER XVL THE CLOSING SHADOVS AND THE END. 1843-1847. Clontarf — Excitement in Dublin — Indictment of O'Connell— Sensation— Forebodings — Address to the people — Con- dolences—Joseph Sturge— The Trial— Notices of the Judges, the Traversers, and the Counsel in the Case — Charge of the Chief-Justice- The Verdict— O'Connell in the House — Excitement over the Country — The Sentence —Incarceration — First Day of Imprisonment — Eespect Shown the Prisoners — Dinner Parties and Bon-Mots McCarthy's Poem — Gives and Eefuses Audiences — Reversal of Judgment and Liberation — Ovation — Home- Shadows — The Young Irelanders — Eesoript from Rome The Famine— Bids Farewell to Ireland— Hopes to Die at Rome— Diary of his Servant— Montalembert's Condolence —Last Hours— Death in Peace— The Faithful round the Bier— Funeral Obsequies and Eloge— "The Dead Tri- bune" .... Cljaptcr, J^irst. FA MIL Y—BIB T H—B THO OD. 1774-1790. POLITICAL SITUATION AT THE TIMK OF o'CONNELL'S BIRTH — HIS PEDIGREE PAUL JONES — SMUGGLING IN KERRY — ENGLISH OPPRESSION^o'oONNBLL's APFECTION FOR HIS MOTHBR, AND PRIDE OF FAMILY — DAKRTNANE ABBEY — THE CLAN O'CONNELL — O'cONNELl's EARLY APTITUDE FOR LETTERS — HIS FIRST SCHOOLMASTER — THE CRELAGHS — FATHER o'gRADY — AT SCHOOL IN CORK — EDUCATION IN FRANCE EARLY HATRED OF ENGLAND REIGN OF TERROR — ^LOUIS XVIIL AND THE OLD IRISH BRIGADE — GENERAL DANIEL COUNT o'CONNELL. f, r guilty of injustice. This revolution was termed a rebellion, because tbe cries of those who initiated it were stifled in blood and death. History repeats itself. It may be useful to remember this at a time when there is a probability of another re- volution, none the less dangerous to public safety, because it has its inception in a demand for personal liberty, — not indeed the personal liberty of individual freedom to do justice, but the personal liberty to prevent the doing of justice by others. The American revolution was settled by law ; the French revolution was quelled by the power of one man. America obtained the freedom which every state must have if it is to bear its part creditably in the political world. France was delivered from the despotism of many by the power of one ; hence when the personal influence of the individual ceased, the multitude were left to seek other guides, with what result we all know. It might be king, or it might be kaiser, who influenced the impetuous G-aul ; as long as the influence lasted all was well, or appeared well; the influence once withdrawn, and the hero dethroned, for any reason, or for none, the country is again a prey to anarchy. In Great Britain there was sufficient law to steer the bark of government over the torrents of revolution, but, unfortunately, there was not always sufficient justice. The law may be good, but if it is not administered justly, the N ;^ LAW IN ENGLAND AND IRELAND. results are scarcely less fatal than if there had been no law to administer. In England, law required justice to be done to the poor, speaking broadly ; but practically the law was not always administered justly, and had not private individuals been far more generous in practice than in theory, the peasants of Great Britain would have given trouble to their masters, and something more than trouble. In Ireland, the laws, as made by Great Britain, and enforced by Great Britain, were not just ; and in Ireland there was more than trouble. From time to time the people rose up as they could against public injustice, against public oppression, but might was for the time stronger than right, and the Irish Celt was too often a victim at the shrine of an unmanly revenge. Still something was gained even by these dis- astrous attempts.-'' There were men in Ireland, and there are men in Ireland, who think little of the personal sacrifice of liberty or life, if they may but gain some increase of liberty, some happier condition of life for those who shall come after them. It remained for O'Oonnell to show that attention could 1 I have confined myself almost exclusively to English, authorities for proof of every statement made in this work with regard to the condition of Ireland. In a letter from Edward Forbes, Esq., to William Wickham, Esq., dated Dublin Castle, July 28, 1798, he says, " The universality of conspiracy, the frequent debates and the consequent trials keep up irritation. Our military is also disorderly, and our yeomen resentful. THE 0' CON NELL PEDIGREE. be attracted to Irish affairs by public agitation, and that, when attention was once given to them, some at least would see the necessity for a government of that country which should not excite rebellion by the enforcement of unjust laws, or perpetuate it by cruelty in the punishment of revolts excited by those laws. Wl O'Connell was born at Carhen, near Cahirciveen, on the 6th of August 1776. The O'Conails, or O'Connells, were formerly possessed of the lordship of Magh-0-Goinin, now Magonihy, in Kerry. The chiefs of the sept were transported to Clare during the usurpation of Oliver Cromwell. Hugh O'Connell, of the race of Fiacha-Finghine, son of Darie-Cearb, mai-ried Margaret, the daughter of Moenmoy O'Brien, prince of Thomond. His son — Geoffry O'Connell married Catherine, daughter of O'Connor Kerry. His sons — Donal, who married Honoria, the daughter of 0' Sullivan Bere J Hugh, who was knighted by Sir Richard Nugent, lord- /•M .... We get rid of seventy prisoners, many of the most important of whom we could not try, and who conld not be disposed of without doing such a violence to the principles of law and evidence as could not he well justified. Our zealots and yeomen do not relish this compro- mise, and there has been a fine buzz on the subject, but it being known the Chancellor most highly approves of it, the tone softens." — Corn- wallis' Correspondence, vol. ii. p. 378. ml ^^if 4 pi THE 0' CON NELL PEDIGREE. deputy of Ireland, with whom he was a great favourite. This chieftain married Mary, base-daughter of Donal Mac- Carthy Mor, whose son — Maurice declared for Perkin "Warbeck, but obtained the pardon of Henry VII., through the influence of Mac- Carthy Mor, on the 24th of August 1496. He married Juliana, the daughter of Rory 0' Sullivan Mor. His son — Morgan married Elizabeth, the daughter of O'Donovan, the chief of Clan-Cathail, in Carbery. His son — Aodh or Hugh married Mora, the daughter of Sir Tadg O'Brien, of Baille-na-Carriga, in the county of Clare. His son — Morgan, called of Ballycarbery, high-sheriff of the county of Kerry, married Helena, daughter of Donal MacCarthy. His son — Richard assisted the Elizabethan generals against the great G-eraldine, surrendered his estates, and obtained a re-grant thereof through the influence of the lord-deputj% He married Johanna, the daughter of Ceallaghan Mac- Carthy, proprietor of Carrignamult, in the county of Cork. His son — Maurice was high sheriff of Kerry, and married Margaret, the daughter of Conchobhar, or Connor, O'Callaghan. His son — Bartholomew married Honoria MacCrohan's daughter. His son — m 1 1 '111 M Geoffrey married Miss Barret, of county Cork. His son Daniel, of Aghagabhar, married Alice, the daughter of Christopher Segrave, Esq., of Cabra, in the county of Dublin. His son — John, called of Aghagower and Darrynane, married Elizabeth, the daughter of Christopher Conway, Esq., of Clachane, or Cloghane, in the county of Kerry. His son — Daniel married Mary, the daughter of Dubh O'Donoghue, of Anwyss, in the county of Kerry. Hia son — Morgan, of Cahirciveen, in the barony of Iveragh, married Catherine, the daughter of John O'MuUane, Esq., of Whitechurch, by whom he had ten children, who lived to the age of maturity; viz., four sons and six daughters. The sons were: first, Daniel, the subject of this sketch; second, Maurice, an officer in the British service, who died at St Domingo, in 1796; third, John O'Connell; and fourth, James O'Connell, now Sir James, Bart., of Lake- view. The daughters were: first, Mary, who married Jeremiah McCarthy, Esq. of Woodview, County Cork; second, Honora, the wife of Daniel 0' Sullivan, Esq., of Reendonegan, in that county ; third, Ellen, who married Daniel O'Connell, Esq., solicitor-at-law ; fourth, Bridget, who married Myles M' Sweeny, Esq., late of Drounquinney ; fifth, Catherine, who married Humphry Moynihan, Esq., of Freemount, both in the county Kerry; and sixth, Alice, who married William Francis Finn, Esq., of Tully- roan, in the county Kilkenny, for many years M.P. for that county. " Daniel O'Connell, who married Morna Duiv,^ and died in the year 1774, left his estate of Darrynane to his eldest son, Maurice O'Connell, and he having no family, adopted Daniel O'Connell [the Liherator] and his brother Maurice. John O'Connell, the Liberator's son, in a sketch 2 Morna Duiv, or Black Mary, was a remarkable character. The Kerry people are, or perhaps we should say were, noted for the facility and appropriateness with which they gave nicknames. These names were, and still are in common use. In fact, they are almost necessary to distinguish the members of different families where a number of people all bear the same surname. This lady belonged to the old sept of the O'Donoghues of the Lakes, and was not a little proud of her descent. Her violence of denunciation, and her remarkable powers of invective are still remem- bered in Kerry. It would appear that she kept the purse, for when paying the labourers their weekly wages she would thunder forth to each in her native language, ' May God prosper, or make away your wages as you earned them.' Morna was also a poetess, and her daughter, Mrs O'Leary, wrote a poem of fierce invective on the death of her husband, Arthur O'Leary, who was shot by a common soldier for refusing to sell his horse to a Protestant for five pounds. " Thank God," adds my in- formant, "those days are past." Morna Duiv's eldest son Maurice, who adopted the Liberator, was known by the sobriquet of " Old Hunt- ing-cap." He died at the advanced age of ninety-five. I am told he was a splendid old man, and though he became blind as years advanced, preserved his other faculties to the last. He always wore his hunting- cap. An old Irish bardic topographer writes thus of the O'Connells — " O'Connell of the slender sword, Is over the bushy-footed hosts A hazel-tree of branching palms For the Munster plain of horse hosts.' COUNT 0' CON NELL. of his father's life, writes thus of another Daniel O'Connell (see note at the end of this chapter) : — " Respecting him there existed many peculiar circum- stances. First, he was the two-and-twentieth child of his father and mother. Secondly, he entered the French service as a sub-lieutenant of Clare's regiment, at the age of fourteen, in the year 1759. Thirdly, unaided by anything but his merit, he rose to the rank of major-' general. He became colonel-commandant of the German regiment, in the French service, of Salm-Salm, of two battalions, of twelve hundred men each, which he con- verted from an undisciplined mob into confessedly the finest regiment in the great French camp, at Metz, in 1787. Fourthly, he served at the siege of Gribraltar, in 1782, being then the second lieutenant-colonel of the regiment of royal Swedes — the first lieutenant-colonel being the Count Fersen, remarked for his personal beauty, and his alleged intrigues at the court of Louis XVI. Fifthly, Colonel Daniel Count O'Connell — to which rank he had then arrived — volunteered, with one hundred men, as marines, in the ship of the French admiral, who vainly endeavoured to prevent the relief of Gibraltar by Lord Hood. Sixthly, he was severely wounded in the actual attack upon Gibraltar, when the French were driven off by General (afterwards Lord) Elliot; and it was because of the gallantry he then displayed, that Louis XVL conferred upon him the command of the regiment of Salm-Salm, already mentioned. Seventhly, he was appointed, in the year 1788, one of the inspectors-general of the French in- fantry. He was the actual author of the system of in- ternal arrangements of the infantry forces now universally adopted in all the European armies.^ Eighthly, he was entrusted in 1789, by Louis XVI., during the first revolu- tionary violence, with the command of ten thousand of the foreign troops by which Paris was surrounded — and the writer of this sketch has often heard him declare, that if Louis XVI. had permitted the foreign troops to crush the Parisian revolutionary mobs, they were both able and willing to do so ; but the humanity of that benevolent, but weak monarch prevented the making of the great experiment of suppression. Ninthly, he remained about the person of the king as long as it was possible for personal devotion to be of any use ; and only emigrated * Sir Bernard Biirke, witli' reference to this system, tells us, that in the year 1788, " The French Government resolved that the art of war should undergo revision ; and a military board was formed for this purpose, comprising four general officers and one colonel. The colonel selected was O'Connell, who was esteemed one of the most scientific officers in the service. "Without patronage or family he had risen to a colonelcy before he had attained his fortieth year. Only a few meetings of the board had taken place when the superior officers, struck with the depth and accuracy of information, great military genius, and correct views displayed by Colonel O'Connell, unanimously agreed to confide to him the renewal of the whole French military code ; and he executed the arduous duty so perfectly that his tactics were those followed in the early campaigns of revolutionised France, adhered to by Napoleon, and adopted by Prussia, Austria, Eussia, and England." €f: 12 THE O'CONNELLS IN FRANCE. when it was impracticable to serve the king by any other conduct. He then made the Duke of Bruns- wick's campaign, as colonel a la suite, in the regiment of hussars, called ' De Berchiny ; ' and, after the close of that disastrous campaign, repaired to England, where he was principally instrumental in prevailing on the British Government to take into their service the officers of the Irish Brigade late in the employment of France. Tenthly, there were six regiments forming that brigade in the British service ; and the command of one of them was conferred upon him. Those regiments were exceedingly ill treated by the British Government ; and the officers (with the exception of the colonels) were unceremoniously put upon half-pay. The colonels, however, were, by stipula- tion, entitled to their full pay for life ; and he accordingly enjoyed that pay, and his rank of colonel in the British service, during the rest of his life. Being married to a St Domingo lady, he returned to France at the peace of Amiens, to make his claims to her estate ; but, on the renewal of hostilities, he was detained as a prisoner in France until the restoration of the Bourbon family. Eleventhly, upon the accession of Louis XVIII. , he was restored to his rank as general in the French service, and received his full pay both as a French general and a British colonel, from 1814 to the downfall of Charles X. in 1830. Having refused to take the oath of allegiance to Louis Philippe, he lost his French pay ; but retained his OCOOIX pay as British colonel until 1834, when he died in his ninety-first year."* As Daniel O'Connell's grandfather had twenty- two chil- dren, and his father ten, a more detailed account of his family connections would occupy too much space, and would scarcely be of general interest. Mr O'Neill Daunt gives an amusing anecdote on this subject in his " Personal Recol- lections of O'Connell." " My grandmother," said the Liberator, " had twenty -two chil- dren, and half of them lived beyond the age of ninety Old Maurice O'ConneU of Darrynane pitched upon an oak-tree to make his own coffin, and mentioned his purpose to a carpenter. In the evening, the butler entered after dinner to say that the carpenter wanted to speak to him. ' For what 1 ' asked my uncle. ' To talk about your honour's coffin,' said the carpenter, putting his head inside the door over the butler's shoulder. I wanted to get the fellow out, but my uncle said ; ' Oh ! let him in, by all means. Well, friend, what do you want to say to me about my cofiin ? ' — ' Only, sir, that I sawed the oak-tree your honour was speaking of into seven-foot plank.' — ' That would be wasteful,' said my uncle. 'I never was more than six feet and an inch in my vamps, the best day I ever saw.' — ' But your honour will stretch after death,' said the carpenter. ' Not eleven inches, I am sure, you blockhead ! But I '11 stretch, no doubt, perhaps a couple of inches or so. Well, make my coffin six feet six, and I '11 warrant that will give me room enough.' " ^ Morgan O'ConneU, of Carhen, had a fair income, though only a second son. It is noticeable and character- * Sketch of the Life of Daniel O'Connell, Esq^., M.P., by his son John O'Connell, late M.P., p. 3. * Personal EecoUections of O'Connell by O'Neill Daunt. lUUUUkI Y> :5 istic of the times that he was obliged to make his first chase of land through the intervention of a trustee ; and. although the consideration was paid by him, yet if the trustee (a Protestant) had chosen to violate the trust, he might have taken the property to himself. Any Protes- tant in the community, who chose to file a " bill of dis- covery," could compel that trust to be disclosed, and could take possession of the estate, without repaying any part of the purchase-money.* The young Daniel spent his boyhood partly with his father at Carhen, and partly with his uncle at Darrynane. There is ample evidence that he was a child of more than ordinary intellect, and of more than ordinary observation. He has left his earliest impressions on record, and the effect which it had deserves special notice. The famous Paul Jones got command of three French'^ 6 Sketch by John O'Connell, page 6. ' Paul Jones' expedition caused considerable disgust and dismay. Mr Beresford wrote thus in a letter on the subj eot dated Dublin, April 27, 1778 : — " Perhaps the most interesting to you may be to know the dis- grace brought upon the navy of Great Britain by a dirty privateer of 18 guns, called, I think, the Bange.r, commanded by a Scotchman of the name of Jones. You have already heard of this vessel having come into Carriokfergus Bay, and dropped anchor by the Drake sloop-of-war of 20 guns, and of her retiring upon the Drake's firing at her. She kept at the mouth of the harbour for eighteen hours afterwards, then sailed for Whitehaven, where you have heard what she did, as also in Scotland. She then came back here to sail again into Belfast ; but the Drake having gone out on a cruise, met her opposite to Donaghadee, where they engaged, and after thirty-eight hours, she took the Drake, having kiUed her captain, his clerk, and several men. and wounded Lieutenant Dobbs :^. ^ « m 4 1 Vi vessels in 1778 to cruise in the Irish seas and the English Channel. He manned his small fleet with English and Irish sailors who had been prisoners of war at Brest, and who preferred such service to dying amidst all the horrors of a French prison. A company of the Irish brigade, always ready to fight against the country that expatriated them, voluntered to serve on board the Bonhomme Richard, his flag-ship. The first land made by Paul Jones upon his cruise from Brest, was on the coast of Kerry. When he closed in with the land, it fell a calm ; and, the tide running at the rate of three or four knots an hour, between the Skelligs rock and Valentia harbour, the situation of the vessels became dangerous, and the boats were sent a-head to tow them out of their difficult position. Towards dusk, a light breeze springing up, the vessels got head-way, and were a volunteer from Carriokfergus, and twenty-one men, shattered the mast3 and rigging of the Drake. She tooli also two vessels which she sank, and two others which she carried with her. She sailed north, with all her sails crowded, with her prizes, intending for Brest. Three frigates are, I understand, after her, the Stag, of whom she has just twenty-four hours' law, the Boston, and another whose name I forget." An amusing observation of Mr Harwood's which he records at the end of this letter, deserves mention though not directly with the present subject. You re- member Mr Harwood's observation, " that His Majesty, God bless him, was the best natured man in his dominions ; he was taking always the ■worst lawyers in the nation to himself, and leaving the best ones for the defence of his subjects." Mr Harwood was M.P. for Doveraile in 1768, and was celebrated for his hon mots. — Correspondence of the Right Hon. John Beresford, vol. i. p. 29. Ill 16 PAUL JONES. moving from the coast, and signals were made for the boats to cast off and come alongside ; but two of the crews, con- sisting of some of the Brest prisoners, disregarded the signals, and, as the night darkened, pulled manfully for shore. They reached Valentia harbour safely, pursuit being impossible. Here they were received by a gentleman with apparent hospitality, but the hospitality was only apparent ; he at once despatched messengers privately to Tralee, that a sufficient force of military might be sent to apprehend them. O'Oonnell was but three years of age when he witnessed this treachery. Probably he did not understand it until long after ; but he often spoke of one of the prisoners with whose manner and appearance he had been very much struct. This man was mounted on a grey horse, and ap- peared to be the lawyer of the party, as he remonstrated very loudly against the injustice which they had suffered.^ By way of reprisals, Paul Jones seized some sailors whom he found at sea off the coast of Valentia. These men, either willingly or unwillingly, were engaged in the cele- ^ " They remonstrated loudly against this treatment, alleging that they had not committed nor intended any breach of the laws, and that the authorities had no right to deprive them of their liberty. I well recol- lect a tall fellow who was mounted on a grey horse, remonstrating angrily at this coercion. No legal charge of course could be sustained against them, and accordingly in the end they were released." — Personal Recollections oj O'Oonnell, by O'JSTeill Daunt. !? grees and descents. O'Connell said something about his family. " Oh ! " exclaimed a guest, " I saw your name in Macgeogehan's " History of Ireland," somewhere at a very early date." The Liberator looked greatly pleased. " Pray get the book," he said; "it is in the library." The book was got, but the passage was not forthcoming, and the gentle- tte upper part and slab are gone, still this rises much above tbe sill of tbe east windows, and is singularly bigb compared to the piscina. It would seem, that, after being disused, and the floor raised, the church had been again adapted for service, the present altar built, and the windows behind blocked up to suit the altered level. A curious pro- jection of the rubble blocking of the north-east lancet seems to have served as a corbel for a statue or lamp. The domestic buildings are in the form of an L, one limb joining the church near the south-east angle, the other projecting from this to the west. These are very rude, and have no architectural features of any interest. The limb joining the church has some riide windows, and a door of rubble work in the east side wall, but they are much injured. A door, with pointed arch of rubble, may be traced in the west wall, near the south-west angle. It is blocked, and the gable of the second iving built against it. Of the latter, only the gables and portions of the side walls remain. All the buildings are of rubble work, very rude, with a great quantity of mortar of the local slate stone. The window and door-dressings in the church are of brown sandstone, from a quarry near the ruins. Owincf to the bad weather-quality of this, they are much injured by time. The walls of the domestic buildings do not bond with those of the church, nor with one another. The buildings appear, therefore, to have been erected at three distinct periods— the church being probably the earliest. No fire-places nor flues remain, or can have existed. In consequence of the east waU of the church having settled out and threatening to faU, Mr O'ConneU has lately had two strong buttresses built to support it. 4 man was obliged to admit tliat he believed he had made a mistake. O'Connell flung himself out of the room with a petulance he seldom exhibited, and, as he retired, was heard muttering something about " humbug." As I have this anecdote from a gentleman who was present, there can be no doubt of its authenticity. O'lsTeill Daunt says in his " Ee&oUections "that O'Connell "was angry at the disparaging manner in which his family had been spoken of by an anonymous writer in the ' Mask,' who described leading members of Parliament. ' The vagabond allows me a large share of talent, but he says I am of humble origin. My father's family was very ancient, and my mother was a lady of the first rank." "In the time of James II., Maurice O'Conal, of the county Clare, was a general of brigade and colonel of the king's guards. In that regiment John O'Conal of Darry- nane — the lineal ancestor of the Liberator — served at the head of a company of foot which he himself had raised and embodied in the regiment. " When the Irish lost the day at Aughrim, John retired with his shattered regiment to Limerick, and was included in the treaty or capitulation of that stronghold. Respecting ' In one of Victor Hugo's works there is an analysis made by him of the great men of modem times who were respectively of noble and plebeian blood, and among the former he classes " O'Connell, gentil- homme Irlandais." m ,. If 30 JOHN 0' CON NELL OF A8HT0WN. this gentleman, O'Connell told an anecdote in the House of Commons, which awakened a storm of anger, groans, and turbulence. When the storm had abated, O'Connell, unabashed by the noisy vociferation of the house, pro- ceeded with his anecdote, which he deemed illustrative of the subject before him : ' On the morning of the battle of Aughrim, an ancestor of mine, who commanded a com- pany of infantry in King James's army, reprimanded one of his men who had neglected to shave himself, ' Oh ! your honour,' said the soldier, ' whoever takes the trouble of cutting my head off in battle may take the trouble of shaving it when he goes home.' " Of another of his ancestors he spoke thus : — ■ " In 1655, John O'Connell of Ashtown, near Dublin, the brother of the lineal ancestor of the Liberator, proved Ms good affection to Oliver Cromwell by conforming to Protestantism. He thereby preserved his estate. ' I saw his escutcheon," said the Liberator, ' on the wall of St James's church, in Dublin, some twenty years ago. I do not know if it be there still." In Smith's " History of Kerry," the O'Connell family and pedigree are scarcely mentioned. A reason is given for this omission which is singularly and painfully character- istic of the times : — " In the course of his literary peregrinations, Dr Smith visited Darrynane, where he was entertained for several days by the grandfather of the great Agitator. The patriarch of Iveragh, in DATE OF O'CONNELL'8 BIRTH. 31 the course of conversation, commnnicated to the historian many interesting particulars of local and domestic history. Warmed by his genial hospitality and delighted with his fund of anecdote, Dr Smith proposed to Mr O'Connell to devote a due proportion of the forthcoming history to the virtues and heroism of the Clan- Connell. The reply vi^as not very encouraging : ' "We have peace, in these glens, Mr Smith,' said the patriarch, ' and amid their seclusion enjoy a respite from persecution : we can still in these solitudes profess the beloved faith of our fathers. If man is against us, God assists us ; He gives us wherewithal to pay for the education of our children in foreign lands and to further their advancement in the Irish Brigade ; but if you make mention of me or mine, these sea-side solitudes will no longer yield us an asylum. The Sassenagh will scale the mountains of Darrynane, and we too shall be driven out upon the world without house or home.' . The wishes of the patriarch were respected by the his- torian — a broken sentence is all he devotes to the annals of the Clan-Connell." In truth, this anecdote, for the authenticity of which we can vouch, reads but too much like the piteous plea of the Red Indian to the white man ; all he asks is to be left in peace, to be allowed to live, to be spared even his poverty. It is not creditable to our common humanity that such pleas should have ever been uttered by those who were once united in one faith, and who at least believed in one Father. O'Connell was also very particular that the date of his birth should be given correctly, and wrote on one occasion to contradict some mistakes which had been made on this subject. He commenced by saying that it was right to be 32 EARLY TASTE FOR LITERATURE. accurate in trifles. He then goes on to say that a para- graph had appeared in the journals which he was desirons of contradicting. " It contained two mistakes — it asserted that I was horn in 1774, and secondly, that I was intended for the Church. I was not intended for the Church. No man respects, loves, or suhmits to the Church with more alacrity than I. But I was not intended for the priesthood. It is not usual with the Catholic gentry in Ireland to de- termine the religious destiny of their children ; and being an eldest son, born to an independence, the story of my having been intended for the Church is a pure fabrication. I was not born in the year 1774. Be it known to all whom it may concern that I was born on the 6th of August 1775, the very year in which the stupid obstinacy of British oppression/orceof the reluctant people of America to seek security in arms, and to commence that bloody struggle for national independence which has been in its results bene- ficial to England, whilst it has shed glory and conferred liberty, pure and sublime, on America." ^ The Liberator's literary tastes manifested themselves early in life; and again, in relating how he mastered the alphabet, we find yet another illustration of the unhappy state of unhappy Ireland. It was a crime for a man to have his children taught to read in Ireland ; and when it was found that Irish love of learning was too strong even for penal laws, and that the Irishman sent his sons to ' Dublin Evening Post, 17tli Jiily 1828. STATE OF EDUCATION IN IRELAND. 33 obtain abroad the advantages that were denied to him at home, it was further made penal to seek education abroad. In truth, it was hard to know what was not penal in Ire- land for a Catholic, and, in truth, any reproach on " Irish ignorance" comes with an ill grace from those whose ancestors did their best to render Irishmen a nation of ignorant slaves. We may be pardoned for doubting, since we neither desire to deny our nationality nor apologise for it, if the case had been reversed, whether the English serf would have made as painful efforts, and as great sacri- fices to secure himself education, had it been thus denied to him. For Protestant education, however, every provision was made. For the upper classes there was Trinity College, Dublin ; for the lower classes there were the Charter Schools. These schools were founded in 1733, in response to a peti- tion of the Protestant primate and archbishop, clergy, and laity. The preamble of the petition ran thus : — ■ " Humbly sheweth, — That in many parts of Ireland there are great tracks of mountaining (sic) and coarse land, of ten, twenty, or thirty miles in length, and of a considerable breadth, almost universally inhabited by Papists, and that in most parts of the same, and more especially in the provinces of Leinster, Munster, and Connaught, the Papists far exceed the Protestants in all sorts of numbers {sic). " That the generality of the Popish natives appear to have very little sense or belief of religion, but what they implicitly take from their clergy (to whose guidance in such matters they seem wholly to give themselves up), and thereby are unfit, not only in gross C ignorance, but in great disaffection to your sacred Maje Government — so that, if some effectual method be not made use of to instruct these great numbers of people in the principles of loyalty and religion, there seems to be very little prospect but that superstition, idolatry, and disaffection to your Majesty, or to your royal posterity, will, from generation to generation, be propagated amongst them." * And so the Charter Schools were established. It was the old story, as old as the first ages of Christianity : the Chris- tians were disloyal because they obeyed God, in preference ,*y^4) to Csesar, even while they proved their loyalty to Caesar, in all that was not disloyal to their God, by pouring out their life's blood in torrents for the support of the empire. The Thundering Legion, whose Christian soldiers obtained by prayer ^ the salvation of the army of Marcus Aurelius, received no better treatment at the hands of their Pagan calumniators than the Irish who were loyal to James, the faithless Stuart. And these schools, in which the " ignorant " Irish were to receive their education, were thus described by the bene- volent Howard and Sir Jerome Fitzpatrick the Government inspector-general : — " The children, generally speaking, are unhealthy, half- ¥i « " Ireland's Grievances— The Penal Laws," p. 29. Dublin: 1812. Catholics were not admitted to Trinity College, Dubhn, until 1793, even as humble students, unambitious of academical honours or promotion. ' The authenticity of this miracle is admitted even by pagan histo- rians. See Dion Cassius, Capitolinus, Claudius, and Tillemont vol ii p. 370. ' starved, in rags, totally uneducated, too much worked, and in all respects shamefully neglected." The hedge-schoolmasters who taught in fear and trem- bling, while one pupil watched the road, that all might dis- perse promptly, if an enemy to learning came in sight, or the itinerant schoolmaster who wandered from house to house, as perhaps a safer method of obtaining a precarious exist- ence, were the only instructors of the Irish youth : yet for all that the Irish youth learned, and learned well, and held his place as a man of learning in after life in those Euro- pean courts where he was welcomed, and showed himself not only loyal to the foreign power under which he took military service, hut also of no ordinary ability as a com- mander and a strategist. At a time when O'Connell's own father could not be lawfully his guardian, it can be a matter of little surprise that he learned the rudiments of education from an ordinary pedagogue.^ 2 In 1703, it was enacted " that no Catholic could be guardian to, or have the custody or tuition of any orphan or child under the age of 21 years, and that the guardianship, when a Catholic was entitled to it, should be disposed of by the Chancellor to the nearest Protestant rela- tion of the child, or to some other Protestant, who is thereby required to use his utmost care to educate and bring up such phild in the Pro- testant religion. Any offence against this act was punished by a penalty of ^500." The act permitting Catholics to be guardians to their own children was not passed until 1782. Usher, who cannot be suspected of any partiality to " Papists," has himself given an account of his visit to Galway, where he found John Lynch, afterwards Bishop of Killala, teaching a school of humanity. y"^ ..."ST'T'fS ^¥T^^.^P H^ 36 "A SPOOSFUL OF HONEY." Even in his own account of his first lesson in reading we see his preference for the "spoonful of honey "^ suffici- ently manifested ; and though it cannot be doubted that his personal experience of the French Revolution had a power- ful effect on his future career, and made him tenaciously fearful of physical force, yet his natural character was gentle. The schoolmaster won his affection in a peculiar manner. His own son, John O'Connell, himself one of the best and gentlest of men, has left the account on record, and we give it in his words. " AVe had proofe," lie says, " during our continuance in that citie, how his schollars profltted under him, by the verses and orations which they brought us." Usher then relates how he seriously advised the young schoolmaster to conform to the popular religion ; but, as Lynch declined to comply with his wishes, he was bound over, under sureties of £400 sterling, to " forbear teaching." The tree of knowledge was, in truth, forbidden fruit, and guarded sedulously by the fiery sword of the law. For further information on this subject, and for details of the history of Irishmen who distinguished themselves abroad and at home under penal laws, we refer the reader to O'Callaghan's " History of the Irish Brigade," and to our " Illustrated History of Ireland." ^ Mr O'Neill Daunt says in his " Eeminiscences " — " On one occasion when O'ConneU had listened to for a long time with great suavity, I said, 'You were infinitely more civil to Mr than I could have been.' " ' My dear friend,' replied he, ' you will catch more flies with a spoon- ful of honey than with a hogshead of vinegar.' " He admits, however, that he could show symptoms of being bored now and then. " Some of the habituSs of the Eepeal Association who knew O'Connell's feelings on such matters, have whispered to me during the speech of a long-wiuded orator, ' Watch Dan, now ! observe how bored he is — there he sits with his hat pulled down over his eyes, patiently waiting until this gentleman finishes.' " I ItAJtgJU " An itinerant schoolmaster came to Carlien one day, and took the little fellow on his knee. He then took out a pocket-comb and combed the child's hair thoroughly without hurting him, as the rough country maids scarcely ever failed to do. In gratitude for exemption from his usual torture, the child readily consented to learn his letters from the old man ; and in the short space of an hour and a half, learned the whole alphabet perfectly and per- manently. " The moral of this tale is, not that you should comb children's heads gently, in order to ensure their learning quickly ; but that the difficulties of teaching them can be much lightened by a little care to conciliate their good-will to the task." It is just possible that the brain was nervously sensitive, as is frequently the case in children of more than ordinary capacity, and they may be tried to the very verge of endurance by ungentle usage. We agree with Mr O'Connell that children may be taught the alphabet with- out " combing the head gently," but it is worth considering that if delicate and sensitive children were treated with more consideration, it might be of advantage to them both morally and physically. O'Connell was then nearly four years old. The school- master's name was David Mahoney. In 1787, O'Connell was taken to the Tralee assizes and witnessed a curious exhibition of the fashion in which justice was administered in those days. From the manner in which the lower orders of Irish were hunted from one place to another, not only by the " English army," but even by their own lords, whose private feuds were neither few nor far between, many of them took to a predatory life from necessity, and continued it from desire. A band of these unfortunate men, who were called Crelaghs, infested the mountains of Glencarra, and preyed on the cattle in Clare and G-alway, which they drove away and sold daily in the fail's of Kerry ; or with impartial rapacity swept off the stolen beeves of Kerry and disposed of them retributively in Galway and Clare. The harassed farmers regarded these " Crelaghs " with terror and loath- ing : but their hatred was repressed by fear, because the Protestant gentry extended to the freebooters a kind of negative protection. A portion of the spoil which the grateful robbers presented to the sympathising magistrates rewarded this profitable connivance. Emboldened by an impunity which, having purchased, they regarded as a right, the robbers stole fourteen cows from the lands of Morgan O'Connell. Exasperated by this outrage, the father of the future Liberator, at the head of an armed party, penetrated the mountain defiles and proceeded to storm the haunt of the banditti. The struggle which ensued was of a very desperate and even sanguinary char- acter, as the Crelaghs offered a fierce resistance, in the course of which the father of young Daniel wounded one and captured two; while the remainder of the robbers broke through their assailants and effected their escape, to renew in another part of the country the depredations which made them so formidable in Glencarra. One evening, as Morgan O'Connell was riding home alone, he was set upon by these desperadoes ; determined to revenge on his friendless head the injuries which, when surrounded by companions, he had inflicted on them. Rushing down the slope of a mountain, they called on him with threats to stop, and fired on him as he continued his course. His horse at this moment, terrified by the dis- charge of the musket, became unmanageable, and he was flung heavily to the ground. While thus prostrate he was again flred at, but fortunately without effect. Regaining his feet, he succeeded in recovering his horse, and springing upon its back, he was speedily beyond the reach of the banditti, who pursued and fired at him as he fled. Some time subsequently one of the Crelaghs was con- victed of horse-stealing at Tralee. Leaning on the bar, he heard the sentence of death with a degree of savage apathy which astonished every spectator in the court. " Is it listening to his lordship you are, you stupid gomeril?" exclaimed a bystander, with unfeigned amazement. " Don't you see it's listening I am?" replied the prisoner angrily; " but fot do I care fot he says. Is not Colonel Blenner- hasset looking at me — isn't he — all the time? and he says nothing." The prisoner, doubtless, relied on the presents which he had given the colonel for an entire immunity from the penalty of crime.* Even the judges of that day * Kerry cows were the victims of Kerry feuds from an early period, but especially during tlie Desmond war. The following extract from our \{X $>'? ^1 were not all exempted from the weakness of accepting a bribe, though, for the credit of the bench, we must hope these delinquents were the rare exception. Denis O'Brien, a man not noted for obedience to law, had a record at Nenagh, and learning that the judge had talked of pur- chasing a set of carriage horses, Denis sent him a mag- nificent set. The judge graciously accepted the horses, praised their points extravagantly, and then, charging the jury in favour of Denis, obtained a verdict for him. The moment Denis gained his point, he sent in a bill to the judge for the full value of the horses. His lordship called Denis aside to expostulate privately with him. " Oh ! Mr 'y^ "History of Kerry," recently published, will show how justice was administered : — " The judges went circuit twice a year, except in the county Kerry, but whether the county was exempted from judicial visits on account of the general propriety of the inhabitants, or because of its remoteness and iuaccessibleness, is by no means evident. Jiistice was administered with tolerable impartiality, for, amongst the earliest Kerry records we can find of the seventeenth century, Sir Thomas Denny was fined £300, and bound 'to good behaviour' for seven years towards John Darroe : his bails were John Fitzmaurice and Rev. Barry Denny ; and at the same assizes Matthew Boarman and Daniel Sullivan were indicted, for that they, 19th December, in the nineteenth year of his Majesty, at Tralee, did assault, beat, batter, and whip John Darran. Summer assizes were then held, and in the same year David Sullivan was released from cus- tody, wherein he had been detained since the summer assizes of 1740, for non-payment of a fine of J15, to which he had been sentenced for stealing a deer from the park of the Knight of Kerry. In 1777 a num- ber of persons were sentenced, and a man was actually condemned to be hanged for stealing ' one Caroline hat, value 10s., and one wigg, value 6s. sterling.'" A SCOTCH BALLAD. O'Brien," said he, "I did not think you meant to charge me for those horses. Come now, my dear friend, why should I pay you for them ? " — " Upon my word, that is curious talk," retorted Denis, in a tone of fierce defiance, " I 'd like to know why your lordship should not pay me for them?" To this inquiry, of course, a reply was im- possible. The judge was obliged to hold his peace and pay the money. While enjoying the amusements of the county town, with keen eye seeing and sharp ear hearing what perhaps was scarcely noticed by others, O'Connell listened to a ballad which made an indelible impression on his memory. He related the circumstance thus to Mr O'Neill Daunt many years afterwards — " I liked ballads above all things when I was a boy," said O'Connell. "In 1787 I was brought to the Tralee assizes. Assizes were then a great mart for all sorts of amusements — and I was greatly taken with the ballad-singers. It was then I heard two ballad-singers, a man and a woman, chanting out a ballad, which contained a verse I still remember : ' I leaned my back against an oak, I thought it was a trusty tree, But first it bent, and then it hroke— 'Twas thus my love deserted me.' * Ee sang the first two lines— sAe sang the third fine, both together sang the fourth, and so on through the whole ballad." ' This is a verse from the well-known Scotch ballad : — " Oh waly, waly up the bank, And waly, waly doun the brae." 42 O'CONNELL IN HIS BOYHOOD. O'Connell spent mucli of his time, even at this early period of his life, in study. When his playmates were en- gaged in noisy games, he would sit apart absorbed in some book J and books were rare enough then to be dearly prized. The "Voyages of Captain Cook" specially interested him, and he would sit for hours poring over the volume, or finding out the places on the map. He had also a great fancy for the Dublin Magazine, which was taken in by his uncle. This serial contained portraits of distinguished personages, with their biographies, and even then some vision of and aspiration for future fame must have entered his mind, for he used to say to himself, " I wonder will my portrait ever appear in this." Yet, even in his wildest dreams, how little could he have anticipated his magnificent future.^ On one occasion when the family were eagerly discuss- ing the topics of the day, and the respective merits of Burke and Grattan, O'Connell, then only a lad of nine years of age, was observed sitting in an arm-chair, silent and ° Speaking of Ms own early recollections, O'Connell said : " My uncle used to get the Dublin Magazine at Oarhen ; it usually contained the portrait of some remarkaMe person, with a biographical notice. I was always an ambitious fellow, and I often used to say to myself, ' I wonder will my visage ever appear in the Dublin Magazine.^ I knew at that time of no greater notoriety. In 1810, when walking through the streets soon after some meeting at which I had attracted public notice, I saw a magazine in a shop-window, containing the portrait of ' Councillor O'Connell,' and I said to myself with a smile, 'Here are my boyish dreams of glory realised.' Though I need not tell you that in 1810, 1 had long outgrown that species of ambition." — Personal Recollections, vol. i. p. 102. 11 '4 -II "I'LL MAKE A STIR IN THE WORLD.' 43 abstracted. He was asked by a lady, who wondered at his silence, "What he was thinking of?" His reply was characteristic — " I'll make a stir in the world yet !" Father 0' Grady was then the chaplain of the O'Connell family, and prepared the boy for the Sacraments. A curious anecdote is told of this ecclesiastic. He resided at Lou- vain during the wars of Marlborough, and from the troubled state of Flanders, he was reduced to the deepest distress. He begged his way to the coast, hoping to meet some vessel whose captain might take him for charity to Ireland. As he was trudging slowly and painfully along, he suddenly fell in with a band of robbers. One of the robbers was a Kerryman, named Denis Mahony, who, moved to compassion by the penniless poverty of the priest, and charmed with the sound of his native tongue, gave him out of his own share of plunder the means of returning to Ireland. " Grod be merciful to poor Denis Mahony ! " Father 0' Grady was accustomed to say, when relating this adventure ; " I found him a useful friend in need. But for all that he might prove a very disagreeable neigh- bour." The Liberator in after years accounted for the appear- ance of a native of Kerry among a gang of Flemish rob- bers, by supposing that he had served in Marlborough's army, and, deserting from ill-treatment, sought subsist- ence on the highway as a footpad. ^ ,1 ACQUITTAL OF A POPISH PRIEST. But poor Father O'Grady only escaped from the perils of starvation and the sea to ran the risk of hanging or imprisonment at home. He was seized on his return to Ireland, and tried on the charge of being a "Popish priest." A witness mounted the table and swore he had heard him "say" Mass. " Pray, sir," said the judge, " how do you know he said Mass?" " I heard him say it, my lord," replied the witness. " Did he say it in Latin ?" inquired his lordship. "Yes, my lord." " Then you understand Latin ? " " A little." " What words did you hear him use ?" " Ave Maria." " That is part of the Lord's Prayer; is it not?" " Yes, my lord," was the fellow's answer. " Here is a pretty witness to convict the prisoner," cried the judge ; " he swears that Ave Maria is Latin for the Lord's Prayer." As the judge pronounced a favourable charge, the jury acquitted Father O'Grady.' O'Connell was sent to school in Cork by his uncle Maurice at the age of thirteen. This school was the first establishment of the kind which had been opened in Ire- 7 An English Protestant writer says : " For many a long year, Irish history is but a melancholy recital of religious intolerance and party vindictiveness."— Zre!aK(i under British Rule, by Lieut.-Colonel Jervis, \l ' I'll make a stir in the world yet." — See page 43. O'GONNELL'S SCHOOL LIFE. land since the Protestant Eeformation. Mr Fagin, in his Memoir of O'Connell, says that lie did not exhibit any extraordinary intellect at this period ; and as his own father was a school-companion of the Liberator, he had good opportunity for correct information.^ O'Oonnell, however, considered himself to have been a quick child, and as he was not remarkable for modesty, he had no hesitation in saying so. On one occasion, when travelling with Mr Daunt, be made this assertion : "I was, in childhood, remarkably quick and persevering. My E.A., M.P., London, 1868, p. 208. Again, lie says : " Tlie following re- wards were fixed for the discovery of Popish, clergy and schoolmaaters — " For an archbishop, bishop, vicar-general, or any other person exercising any foreign ecclesiastical jurisdiction, . . £50 For each clergyman, and each secular clergyman, not regis- tered according to 2 Anne, c. vii 20 For a schoolmaster or usher, 10 — Anne, c. iii., Irish Statutes. He adds : " To limit the power of a Papist to take leases for more than thirty-one years made him care but little for investing in land till death gave him 'a Protestant lease of the sod.' To forbid the education of Popish children by Papists, either abroad or at home, secured their continuing or remaining in happy ignorance," p. 215. * " Daniel O'Cormell was early sent by his uncle, Maurice, by whom he was adopted, to Mr Harrington's school, in the great island of Cove, near Cork. The father of the writer was a school-fellow of his, and we have often heard him say, that O'Connell did not display any extraordi- nary precocity of intellect. He was, like Swift and Sheridan, and a thousand others who afterwards rose to eminence, but an ordinary scholar." — Fagin's Life of O'Connell. This work was reprinted from the very type used for its original destination — a newspaper. ■sQsaa L«-^' r. childish propensity to idleness was overcome by the fear of disgrace : I desired to excel, and could not brook the idea of being inferior to others. One day I was idle, and my teacher finding me imperfect in my lesson, threatened to beat me. But I shrank from the indignity, exclaiming,— ' Oh, don't beat me for one half hour ! If I haven't my lesson by that time, beat me then /' The teacher granted me the reprieve, and the lesson, rather a difficult one, was thoroughly learned." On another occasion O'Connell said to me, " I was the only boy who wasn't beaten at Harrington's school ; I owed this to my attention." In 1791 Maurice O'Connell sent the two brothers to Flanders, intending that they should enter the famous Jesuit college at Liege. They sailed from Ireland in a brig bound for London. The captain undertook to land them at Dover, whence they were to take the packet to Ostend. The tide not serving when they arrived at their destina- tion, they were landed in boats, and Mr O'Connell's first acquaintance with the English shore was made as he stumbled on the beach after a thorough submersion from a capsized boat. An opportunity ofi'ering in a few days, the party pro- ceeded to Ostend, and thence by diligence to Liege, where, however, a disappointment awaited them. Mr O'Connell was found to have passed the age when boys could be admitted as students, and they had to retrace their steps P^ c&S f^4 0' CON NELL AT BOTJAY. 47 as far as Louvain, there to await new instructions from home. The difference of disposition between the two boys was here strikingly shown : Maurice, the younger, naturally enough, availed himself of his six weeks' unexpected holi- days (the interchange of communications between their then abiding-place and the remote shores of Kerry, requiring that interval), to indulge in all a boy's vacation amuse- ments ; while, on the other hand, his brother, feeling no relish for idleness, attended class in one of the halls at Louvain as a volunteer, and with such assiduity, that ere the arrival of letters from home, for which they were wait- ing, he had risen to a high place in a class of one hundred and twenty boys. Their uncle's new orders were, that they should go to St Omers ; whither, accordingly, they proceeded, and remained a year — viz., from early in the year 1791, till a similar period of 1 792 — when they were removed to the English college of Douay for some months.® An anecdote is told of O'Connell's journey, which shows, were it needed to show it, how deeply the minds of Irish youth were impregnated with hatred for England, or rather with hatred for English rule. It would be well if those who object to such manifestations of feeling would, for one moment, put themselves in the place of these expatriated s-"? ^1 boys, and ask themselves how they would have felt and acted had Ireland been master of England, and had Irish law-makers compelled the scions of England's most ancient houses to seek education in foreign lands, because it was not only denied, but even prohibited, under the most terrible penalties, in their own country. If such considera- tions were made honestly, we think Englishmen would lose nothing, and might gain a great deal. There is no possible advantage to be gained from wilful blindness to facts. We have heard of somewhat similar instances in the present day. As the O'Connells travelled in the diligence, a young Frenchman discovered, or supposed he had discovered, their nationality. He immediately commenced pouring out the most violent tirades against England. O'Connell seemed perfectly satisfied ; and the Frenchman, astonished at his apathy, after talking a long time, lost patience witb the young traveller. " Do you hear? Do you understand what I am saying, sir ? " " Yes, I hear you — I comprehend you perfectly." " And yet you are not angry?" " Not in the least." " How can you so tamely bear the censures I pronounce against your country ? " " Sir, England is not my country. Censure her as much as you please— you cannot offend me. I am an Irishman, ^K THE KERRY PEASANTRY. 49 and my countrymen have as little reason to love England as yours ; perhaps less." There is ample evidence that O'Counell distinguished himself at St Omers. He took the first place there in every class, probably owing to his proficiency in classical learning. The natives of Munster, and it is well known of Kerry and Cork in particular, were often found with Latin primers in their possession, and even with some fair know- ledge of that language, at the very time that education was most sternly prohibited. ■^ 1 An attendant of Rinuooini, who visited Ireland as Papal Legate, in October 1645, has left some very interesting details on this subject in a MS. addressed to Count Thomas Rinuccini, but the writer is supposed to have been the Dean of Fermo. He gives a graphic description of their arrival at Kenmare— "al porto di Kilmar"— and of the warm reception they met from the poor, and their courtesy — " La cortesia di quel poveri popoli dove Monsignor capito, fu incomparabUe." He also says : " Gran cosa, nelle montagne e luoghi rozzi, e gente povero per le devastazioui fatte dei nemici eretici, trovai perO la nobilta della S. fede Catolica, giach^ aiaro vi fu uomo, o donna, o ragazzo, ancor che piccolo che non me sapesse recitar il Pater, Ave, Credo, e i commandamenti, della Santa Chiesa." "It is most wonderful that in this wild and mountainous place, and a people so impoverished by the heretical enemy, I found, nevertheless, the noble influence of the holy Catholic faith ; for there was not a man or woman, or a child however young, who could not repeat the Our Father, Hail Mary, Creed, and the com- mands of Holy Church." "We believe the same might be said at the present day of this part of Ireland. It is still as poor, and the people are still as well instructed in and as devoted to their faith now as in that century. A work was published in Florence, in 1844, entitled "Nunziatura in Irlanda," di Gio. Battista Einuccini. This work, which throws great light upon the history of the period, contains a part of the Rinuccini D 50 1 21 AO I .VARY "HAPPY IGNORANCE." It is true, iiideecl, that an English Protestant writer has recently asserted that the iirohibition of education in Ire- land resulted either in the conformity of individuals to the state religion or in "happy ignorance." But this assertion, like many another made by those who are utterly ignorant, though, perhaps, not always wilfully so, of the subject on which they write, is simply false. The instances of " conformity " are indeed rare, and few have been so bold as to assert that these "conformities" were conversions. The " hapi^y ignorance " is imaginary. If all who were educated in Catholic continental colleges did not exhibit as brilliant manifestations of intellect as O'Connell, it was not because their education was defective, but because intellectual gifts are not equally distributed. Maurice O'Connell must have been an educated man himself, or he would scarcely have been so desirous of pro- curing educational advantages for his nephews. He was by no means content with sending them to college, at considerable expense ; while they pursued their academic career, he took care to inform himself of their progress; and the following letter to him from the Eev. Dr Stai:)ylton, the President of St Omers, is alike creditable to the boys MS. This volume also contains, in tlie original Italian, tlie report presented by Rinuccini to tlie Pope on his return from Ireland. Burl^e lias given some extracts from the MS. in his " Hibernia Dominicana," and Carte mentions it also ; but otherwise these very important docu- ments appear to have been fpiite overlooked. 6^ 4 yt it and to their self-appointed guardian. It is dated January 1792:— " You desire to have my caudid opinion respecting your nephews j and you very properly remark, that no habit can be worse than that the instructors of youth who seelc to gratify the parents of those under their care, by ascribing to them talents and qualities which they do not really possess. You add, that, being only the uncle of these young men, you can afford to hear the real truth respecting their abilities or deficiencies. It is not my habit to disguise the precise truth, in reply to such inquiries as yours. You shall, therefore, have my opinion with perfect candour. "I begin with the younger — Maurice. His manner and de- meanour are quite satisfactory. He is gentlemanly in his conduct; and much loved by his fellow-students. He is not deficient in abilities ; but he is idle, and fond of amusement. I do not think he will answer for any laborious profession ; but I will answer for it, tliat he never will be guilty of anything discreditable. At least, such is my firm belief. " With respect to the elder, Daniel, I have but one sentence to write about him, and that is, that I never was so much mistaken in my life as I shall be, unless he be destined to make a remark- able figure in society." " It is needless to say," observes Mr John O'Connell, " that the times were as perilous for strangers, as for natives, especially Englkh strangers ; under which designation the unhappy con- tinental custom (now at last leginning to be altered), of classing natives of Ireland abroad, caused Mr O'Connell and his brother to be included. They had to remain, however, at Douay, during several weeks of the Eeign of Terror, not being able to follow the example of other students in going home, owing to the interruption and delay of communications from Ireland. During this later period the boys were several times insulted by the soldiery that passed through Douay, on their way to and from the seat of war on the northern frontier. On an eminence just outside the town m -11 1 i are the traces of a Eoman camp, attributed to Caesar; and here thirty-six thousand troops, the great majority raw boys, were for some time encamped, rendering residence at Douay still more dan-erous and disagreeable. ' Little aristocrats,' ' young priests,' &c , were the mildest terms in which the unbridled soldiery saluted the' boys wherever they met ; and, on one occasion, the soldiers, as they were marched through the town, heaped the fiercest execrations and insults upon them." O'Neill Daunt says,—" The Bishop of Ardagh told me that a French captain of artillery said to him shortly after the trois jours de Juillet, ' Some of us imagined that your O'Connell was born at St Omers. Ah! if he had been a native of our country we should have made him king of the French.' " When we recollect the fate of many French kings, whether reigning by legal or popular right, we cannot but observe that O'Connell had a fortunate escape. A French statesman has dared to face the scepticism of the age, or it might be more correct to say, has anticipated it, by writing of " God in History." It is not fashionable to attribute much influence to Providence ; but we do not profess or desire to follow the multitude : we would there- fore suggest that a most merciful Providence permitted O'Connell's residence in France while that unhappy country was being purged in the terrible furnace of self-created incendiarism. We cannot doubt that the impression made on his mind by what he saw, and still more by what he heard, was a powerful restraint on his conduct in after life "SEMPER ET UBIQUE FIDEL IS." 53 fe and made him dread that violent kindling of the passions which so surely ends in diabolic crimes. NoTB.^Af ter tlie fall of Napoleon in 18 14-1 5, and the restoration of the Bourbons, in the person of Louis XVIII., that monarch, as so much at- tached to the old recollections of his dynasty, was not unmindful of the Irish Brigade. Above all, he could not forget how, in 1792, he himself conveyed the final expression of the gratitude of his family to the repre- sentatives of the three last regiments of the Brigade, or those of Dillon, Walsh, and Berwick, with a " drapeau d'adieu," or farewell banner, emblematic of their national deserts, and accompanied by these words— " Gentlemen, — We acknowledge the inappreciable services that France has received from the Irish Brigade, in the course of the last 100 years ; services that we shall never forget, though under an impossibility of requiting them. Eeoeive this standard, as a pledge of our remembrance, a monument of our admiration, and of our respect ; and, in future, generous Irishmen, this shall be the motto of your spotless flag — ' 1692—1702,' ' SeMPEE ET UBIQUE FIDELIS.'" The banner for the Brigade represented an Irish harp, and was em- broidered with shamrocks and fleurs-de-lis, or lilies. In 1814, the officers of the Old Irish Brigade in France requested the Duke of Fitz- James to present them to the king ; which request the Duke, after thanking them for the honour thereby done him, complied with, in these few words, " which are a summary of the Irish character, in all its chivalrous sublimity," says my French authority— " SlEE, — I have the honour of presenting to your Majesty the sur- vivors of the Old Irish Brigade. These gentlemen only ask for a sword, and the privilege of dying at the foot of the throne." Louis, however, was too deeply indebted to England for the recovery of his crown, to do anything directly opposed to the wishes of her govern- ment, and it particularly pressed upon him, through Lord Castlereagh, that there should be no restoration of an Irish Brigade in France. " This fact is certain," alleges a contemporary in 1814, " and very uncommon exertions must have been used to procure this concession from Louis ; because, independent of the general claims of this body on the gratitude of the French monarchy, one of these regiments had received a promise THE YOL\rGBST OF TWENTY-TWO. from the present king — that, in the event of his restoration, the regi- ment, for its fidelity, should be promoted to the rank of the Guards of the King." I have now only to conclude with notices of two veneraLle survivors, for many years, of the gallant corps to which they belonged — the one, an officer of equally high rank and merit — the other, the last who died on the Continent. 1. Of the former survivor of the old Brigade, who was uncle to the celebrated Daniel O'Connell, this memoir, from a member of the family, is given, with some slight alterations and compression : — " General Daniel Count O'Connell, Knight Grand Cross of the Order of the Holy Ghost, and Colonel of the late 6th Regiment of the Irisli Brigade in the British service, entered the French army at the age of 14, in the year 1757, as second Lieutenant in the Regiment of the Irish Brigade, commanded by, and called after, the Earl of Clare. He was the youngest of twenty-two children, of one marriage, and was born in August 1473, at Darrynane, in the Coimty of Kerry, the residence of his father, Daniel O'Connell. His education had, at that early period, been confined to a thorough knowledge of the Greek and Latin languages — a knowledge which he preserved to the latest period of his life — and to a familiar acquaintance with the elements of the mathematics. He served his first campaign during the Seven Years' War in Germany, and became respected by his superior officers, from his strict attention to all his military duties, and beloved by all his companions, from the imaffeoted grace, gaiety, and generosity of his disposition. At the conclusion of tlie war, instead of devoting the hours of peace to idleness or pleasure, he dedicated them, with the closest attention, to the study of literature generally, but especially to that of the branches of military engineering. He was attached to the Corps du Genie in its early formation, and soon became known to be one of the most scientific of the military engineers of France. He distinguished himself at the siege and capture of Port Mahon, in Minorca, from the English, in the year 1779, being at that time Major in the Regiment of Royal Swedes. He received public thanks for his services on that occasion, and a recommendation, from the Commander-in-Chief to the Minister of War, for promotion. That promotion he immediately obtained, and served at the siege of Gibraltar in the year 1782, as Liedtenant-Colonel of his Regiment, the Royal Swedes, but attached to the corps of engineers. Everybody remembers the attack made by the floating batteries on Gibraltar on the 13th 'M ?/ TEE 'OTHER' LIEUTENANT-COLONEL. 55 Septemlaer 1782, and tlie glorious and triumphant resistance of the English garrison, under General Elliott. Lieutenant-Colonel O'Connell ■was one of the three engineers to whose judgment the plan of attack was submitted, a few days before it was carried into effect. He gave it, as his decided opinion, that the plan would not be successful. The other two engineers were of a contrary opinion, and the attack took place accordingly. The event justified his judgment. Upon a point of honour recognised in the French arm)', he claimed a right to share the perils of an attack, which was resolved upon against his opinion. When the attempt to storm Gibraltar was resolved on, it became necessary to procure a considerable number of marines, to act on board the floating batteries. For this purpose, the French infantry was dra^va up, and being informed of the urgency of the occasion, a call was made for volun- teers, amongst the rest, of course, from the Royal Swedes. Lieutenant- Colonel O'Connell's regiment was paraded, and the men having been informed that he was to be employed on the service, the -battalion stepped forward to one man, declaring their intention to follow their Lieutenant- Colonel. It so happened that the senior Lieutenant-Colonel, the Count De Ferzen, then well known as ' le beaii Ferzen,' and towards whom it was more than suspected that Marie Antoinette entertained feelings of peculiar preference, had arrived from Paris, but a short time before, to join the regiment, which since his appointment he had scarcely seen. Attributing the enthusiasm of the men to his appearance, he rode up)> and assured them, that he would be proud to lead them. A murmur of disappointment passed along the line ; and, at length, some of the older soldiers ventured to declare, that it was not with him they volunteered, but with the other Lieutenant-Colonel, who had always commanded, and always protected them. With a generosity which does him honour, Ferzen immediately declared, that he would not attempt to deprive Colonel O'Connell of the honour he so well deserved ; but that, in making way for him, he would sa)^, that he hoped, when the regiment knew so mvx:h of him, they would be equally ready to follow him. Colonel O'Connell was named second in command of one of the floating batteries, and this battery was among the first to come into action. He had, in the early part of the fight, a portion of his ear taken off by a ball ; about the period when the batteries began to take fire, a shell from the English mortars burst close to his feet, and severely wounded him in no less than nine places. Although almost covered with wounds, his recovery i>^ was not slow, and, being placed Wgh on the list of those recommended for promotion, he was, in the ensuing year, appointed Colonel comman- dant of a German regiment of two battalions of 1000 men each, then m the French service, but belonging to the Prince of Salm-Salm ihe re-iment when Colonel O'Connell got the command, was m the most lamentable state of disorganisation and indiscipline ; and it was an- nounced to him, by the French Minister of War, that one reason for .dying him that regiment was the expectation, that he would remedy all hs disorders. Nor was that expectation disappointed. There was, m 1787, a LTand review of vipwards of 50,000 French infantry m Alsace, and it was admitted, that the Eegiment of Salm-Salm was the regiment in the highest state of discipline in the whole camp, and its Colonel re- ceived public thanks on that account. He was soon after appointed to the high and responsible office of Inspector-General of all the French Infantry, and he attained also the rank of General Oflacer. In this capacity he was intrusted with the organisation of the general code of military discipline, especially as relating to the interior regimental arrangements ; and as his suggestions and book of regulations were adopted into the French armies after the Revolution, and imitated by other nations, the advantages derived from them are still felt by every army in Europe. We have thus traced his career from his entrance in the French service as a second Lieutenant. From that rank, unaided by any interest, without a patron, or a friend, save those he attached to himself by his virtues, he rose to the command of a splendid regiment, and to a rank but little below the highest in the service of France ; and he attained that station, at a time when the bigotry of the Penal Code precluded him from holding the most insignifioant commission in the British army. Still more brilliant prospects lay before him ; but the French Revolution, overturning thrones and altars, obliterated from the recollection the fate of private individuals, in the absorbing nature of national interests which that mighty movement involved. He was, it may be well said, stripped of his fame and fortunes by that Revolution; but he might have retained both if he could sacrifice his principles, because both Dumourier and Carnot pressed him, more than once, to accept the command of one of the revolutionary armies. He totally declined any such command, feeling it a duty to remain near the person of Louis XVI., and to share, as he did, some of his greatest perils in the days of tumult and anarchy, until that ill-fated, but well-meaning. monarch was hurled from his throne, and cast into prison. Unable any longer to serve the Bourbon cause in France, General O'Connell joined the French Princes at Coblentz, and made the disastrous campaign of 1792, under the Duke of Brunswick, as Colonel of the Hussars de Berchiny. In 1793, General O'Connell was, on his return to his family in Kerry, detained in London, with other French officers, by the British Government, to lay and digest plans for the restoration of the Bourbon family. Upon this occasion, he sent in a plan for the campaign of 1794, which attracted so much attention, that Mr Pitt desired an interview, and received with thanks many elucidations of the plan." Soon after, the Ministry, having determined to form an Irish Brigade of six regi- ments in the British service, "this determination was carried into effect, and one of those regiments was placed under the command of General O'Connell. It was stipulated that the Colonels should not be raised to the rank of Generals in the British service, but should receive fuU pay for life." General O'Connell, during the peace of 1802, returned to France, to look after a large property, to which his lady was entitled ; he became a victim of the seizure of British subjects by the then First Consul ; and remained a prisoner in France until the downfall of Napoleon, and the restoration of the Bourbons. That event restored him to his military rank in France ; and he enjoyed, in the decline of life, amidst the affectionate respect of his relations and friends, the advantage of full pay, as General in the service of France, and Colonel in the service of Great Britain — an advantage which circumstances can, perhaps, never again produce for any man ; but which he enjoyed with the full knowledge and approbation of both powers. During the peace of 1814, General O'Connell met Marshal Ney at dinner, at the house of one of the then Ministry. A good deal of conversation passed between them, and at length Ney stated, that he had known General O'Connell before the Eevolution, and mentioned in particular having frequently seen him in the year 1787. ' " My memory," replied the General, " is particularly good ; I have seen few officers whom I do not recollect, and I do not think I could have seen a person so likely to be remarkable as Marshal Ney, without recollecting him." " General," returned Ney, " you could not have remarked me ; you then commanded the regiment of Salm-Salm ; I was a corporal of hussars ; our Colonel and you were fast friends, and frequently exchanged guards ; and I have often, as corporal, posted and relieved the hussar sentinel on your tent, while one of your corporals vras going through the same duty at my Colonel's." The Revolution of 1830 deprived him, however, of his pay as French General. He refused to take the oath of fidelity to Louis PhUippe, and ■was, of course, destituted. He retired to the country seat of Ms son-in- law, at Madon, near Blois — a beauteous spot on the Loire, which he had himself ornamented in the most exquisite style of English planting — and there, in his declining health, he waited with resignation the call of his God, which occurred on the 9th of July, 1833, he having then nearly completed his 90th year, and being the oldest Colonel in the English service. " He had never, in the season of his prosperity, for- gotten his country, or his God. Loving that country, with the strongest affection, he retained, to the last, the full use of her native language ; and, although master of the Spanish, Italian, German, Greek, and Latin, as well as French and English languages, it was, to him, a source of the greatest delight, to find any person capable of conversing with him in the pure Gaelic of his native mountains. There never lived a more sincere friend — a more generous man. His charities were multiplied and continuous ; and it was the surprise of all who knew him, how he could afford to do all the good he did to his kind. He was, all his life, a practical Catholic, and had the comfort of dying, without a pane amidst all the sacred and sweet consolations of that religion, which he had not forgotten in his youth, and which did not abandon Mm in the days of darkness and deiith..—Bequiescat in pace." dL^apkr BmA EARLY DA YS AND FIRST IMPRESSIONS. 1790-1800. THE FKEKOH HEVOLDTION AND THE IRISH REBELLION OOMPAEED — LOUIS XIV. AND GEOEQE HI. — ENGLISH OPINIONS ON IRISH POLICY — LOUIS XVI. — THE TWO EHEARES — ST OMERS — O'CONNELL AND THE PWESTHOOD — HIS OPINIONS OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION — INTERVIEW WITH ROBERT OWEN — AT LIN- COLN'S INN — ORIGIN OF CONSTITUTIONALISM — CATHOLIC CHURCH CONSER- VATIVE — THE ENGLISH AND IRISH CATHOLICS CONTRASTED — EARLY TORYISM — hardy's trial — HOBNE TOOKE— THE GEORGES AND THE STUARTS — RISE OF DEMOCRACY — AMERICAN WAR — BENJAMIN FRANKLIN — THE IRISH IN AMERICA. has been more than once suggested that the Irish Re- bellion of 1798 was insinred by the French Eevolution, which synchronised with it. That some of the leaders of revolt in Ireland did look to France for assist- ance is a matter of history ; but no two ' public events could have been more dissimilar in cause and in effect than the Irish Rebellion and the French Revolution. In Ireland the people rebelled against the re- lentless persecutors of their faith ; in France, the nation trampled on and defiled even the very symbols of their religion. In Ireland, the out- rages which were committed by the rebels, how- ,1 v1 62 CLOSE TO THE ''TARPEIAN ROCK." ever, would have been considered simply as unjustifiable reprisals for atrocities which cannot be denied, and which cannot be excused, had the perpetrators not been Irish. The French Eevolution was a revolt against all authority ; the Irish Rebellion was the cry of the oppressed against the op- pressor, the cry of the enslaved for freedom, the effort which must be made sooner or later, with failure or with success, as God wills, for those who have suffered long and unjustly. In France, the first assembling of the tiers Stat looked like a pledge of national restoration and national freedom; but France had no definite aim, though, in truth, its wants were many, and France had no master mind to explain or rather to comprehend its needs. Mirabeau, indeed, had foretold its future with the prophetic utterance of keen worldly wisdom and acute self-interest: " There is but one step from the Capitol to the Tarpeian Eock." It was true. But unhappily the few who strove to find a place in its Capitol also sought to govern, and failing, were dashed to ruin down the steep precipice of popular odium ; there were thousands who never sought to rule, who only desired to be ruled justly, and yet, for them also, the end was death and agony. If the leaders of the French Revolution steeped their unhappy country and their own souls in crime and misery, they were, at least, men with a policy, with a policy of cruelty like Robespierre, with a policy of selfishness like Danton ; but in Ireland there was not a single man with a M H 'mq m 4 Tim vox POPULI. policy. Yet the leaders of Irish revolt were undoubtedly men who sacrificed their own interests to the popular cause. There were exceptions, but they were exceptions, and only proved the rule. In all revolutions there never was a knight, so pure and without reproach, so single-minded in his purpose, so disinterested in his efforts, as the young scion of the lordly house of Fitzgerald, the young noble, sans peur et sans reproche, the victim of the traitor, who died, loving, not wisely, but all too well the unhappy land to which he belonged by right of consignment rather than by right of nativity. The only strict parallel between the state of France and the state of Ireland at the close of the last century can be found in the condition of the people. The leaders of the French Revolution would not have succeeded unless they had been supported by the people. We are far from de- siring to maintain the vox populi vox Dei principle. The voice of the people is not always divine, but the voice of the people should at least meet with a patient hearing from those who govern the people. If the voice of the people had been heard either in France or in Ireland, or rather if the voice of the people had been listened to patiently, and if men who professed themselves able to guide and govern the people had taken some little pains to understand that voice, a bloody chapter of Euro- pean history might have remained unwritten. In France, a certain stereotyped nobility was neces- m \M \A sary for personal or professional advancement. In Ireland that advancement depended on the profession of a certain religious belief. The results were almost the same. In France, the peasantry were sold like cattle with the soil ; in Ireland, they were legally transferred. In France, the old ties of feudal affection, if such affec- tion had ever existed, which we very much doubt, were shattered by ever increasing exactions ; in Ireland, where such affection had existed, it was weakened past recal by indifference and tyrannical bondage of opinion. In Ireland, the people knew no king. The king of Eng- land was indeed nominally their monarch, but he was not the monarch of their affections. He was the grim, stern, and alas ! vindictive lawgiver. He was the power from whence emanated the decrees of life and death ; from whom they were compelled to receive a religion of which they knew nothing, except that it was not the religion of their fathers, and laws which seemed to have been passed only that they might live to provide abundance for their legis- lators while they themselves were starving.^ " Again, I -vvould give English opinion on tlie subject of English policy. No Irish writer has ever spoken half as severely on this subject as an English statesman. In 1V93, Charles James Eox writes thus of English foreign policy : " Our conduct to them [the Americans] as well as to the Danes, Swedes, Duke of Tuscany, and others who wished to be neutral, has been insufferable, both for arro- gance and injustice."— MemomZ and Gorrespondence of Charles James Fox, vol. iii., p. 47. " For many a long year, the history of Ireland is but a melancholy WHOLESALE CONFISCATION. 65 If Louis the Fourteenth of France alienated the affec- tions of his people by his indifference, George the Third of England was practically unknown to his Irish subjects. Yet terrible as were the wrongs of Ireland, and oppressed as they were by years of injustice, we believe few will say that the most exasperated Irish rebel would have imbrued his hands in the blood of his king. There was indeed one part of France which was exempted from the crimes, though not from the sufferings of the Revolution. A brief glance at the causes which exempted it may be useful to our future ; and it is surely instructive. The luxuries of the capital had not penetrated into the Vendean provinces, and, what was almost the inevitable recital of religious intolerance and party yindiotiveness. 'William sanctioned the outlawry of tliree thousand nine hundred and twenty followers of King James in Ireland, at a time when but fifty-four people in England suffered for the same offence ; and, taking advantage of the consequent forfeitures of land, which amounted to 1,060,792 acres, he lavishly distributed them amongst his immediate friends. This act was too gross not to attract attention ; and the English Parliament, in 1699, appointed commissioners to inquire into the matter. The following year, they reported to the House that Elizabeth Villiers, Countess of Orkney, had obtained 97,649 acres ; Keppel, created Lord Albemarle, 108,000 ; Ginckle, Baron of Aughrim and Earl of Athlone, 28,480 ; Henri de Massue, Marquis de Rouvignj^, created Earl of Gal- way, 36,148 acres ; Bentinck, Earl of Portland and Lord Woodstock, 135,000. In consequence of this report a Bill of Assumption was intro- duced into the English Parliament, and passed, much to the discomfiture of William ; and it is worthy of observation that a clause was inserted in this Act especially protecting such of the Irish as had re-obtained estates in accordance with the treaty of Limerick, although it was stated by the commissioners that many of these restitutions had been corruptly 66 YEN BE AN AND IRISH PEASANTRY. consequence, the relationships between the governed and the governing classes were based on principles of justice. The proprietors were resident. " They were constantly engaged in connections either of mutual interest, or of kindly feeling with those who cultivated their lands." They sympathised with the people when they wept, they rejoiced with them when they rejoiced. Thus, when the peasantry elsewhere in France rose up against their land- lords, those of La Vendee died in defending theirs. In Ireland in the far south, in the yet farther west, there were a few such landlords, and as a necessary consequence a few such faithful followers ; but for them the antagonism was bitter, and the result misery to both oppressor and oppressed. procured. The Irisli Parliament, however, -was not so impartial. Taking advantage of the dispirited condition of the Roman Catholics, it enacted statutes against them from time to time, as insulting as they were oppressive. Any lands, tenements, or hereditaments, of which any Protestant was, or should be, seized in fee -simple, absolute, or fee-tail, which by the death of such Protestant or his wife ought to have descended to his son, or other issue in tail, being Papists, were to descend to the nearest Protestant relation, as if the Popish heir and other Popish relatives were dead. The small remnant of the Roman Catholic gentry mustered courage enougli to demand to be heard by counsel against the provisions of the Act, which privilege being granted to them, we find the curious picture of Papist counsel quoting Scripture and the right of common law at the bar of a Protestant Parliament, to urge upon it tlie necessity of observing solemn treaties, and of not pass- ing enactments which would have disgraced a pagan state." — Ireland under British Rule. By Lieut.-Col. Jervis, R. A., M.P. London, 1868. pp. 210-215. m A DISTINCTION WITH A DIFFERENCE. It was an axiom of Sully's that the people never revolt from fickleness or the mere desire of change. One of the most eminent of English historians has approved this maxim, but with a necessary qualification,^ and he might have added that the intensity of the result would be gene- rally proportional to the intensity of the cause. Burke described the state of France as " perfectly simple." " It consists," he said, " of but two classes, the oppressors and the oppressed ; and if the oppressed became in turn the most cruel of oppressors, it was because the first oppressors had made the priests and the people formally abjure the Divi- nity, and had estranged them from every civil, moral, and social, or even natural and instinctive sentiment, habit, and practice, and had rendered them systematically savages." It was principally this formal " abjuration of the Divinity" which made the most striking difference between the con- duct of the French and Irish revolutionists, and it is not a little remarkable, that the men who were most earnest in their efforts to procure French assistance for Ireland, were, I will not say Protestants, though they were nominally such, but rather infidels. When Daniel and Maurice O'Connell sailed from France, 3 " Subseq\Tent events have not falsified tlie maxim of Sully, though they have shown that it requires moclifioation. The observation, more- over, is true only in reference to the circumstances of revolutionary troubles. The people over a whole country never pass from a state of quiescence to one of trouble without the experience of practical griev- ances." — Alison's History of Europe, vol. i. p. 63. li 'if ivuvjvC the two Sheaves were their fellow-travellers. It was the same packet-boat which brought over the intelligence that the unfortunate Louis had died like a king, if he had not lived * like one. The murder of the king was necessarily the one subject of conversation. The Sheares were communicative. They had been in Paris at the time, and they loudly proclaimed their approval of the popular fury. An English gentleman con- tinued the subject, and at last, the brothers boasted that they had actually been present when the deed of blood was done. * Perhaps the one only scene in the life of this unhappy monarch in which he showed anything like kingly dignity, was that which occurred on the 20th of June 1792. Sansterre and the Marc^uis de Huen had burst into the royal presence at the head of an infuriated mob. The men shouted " Ca ira" and amongst other banners of a horrible and blasphemous character, they bore one with the words, " The Constitution or Death ! " while one demon incarnate carried a bloody calf's heart on the point of his pike, with the inscription round it, " The heart of an aristocrat." Louis was placed on a chair, which had been raised on a table, by a few of his faithful attendants, while the mob raged, howling and dancing through the palace. He alone remained luimoved. A drunken workman handed him the red cap of liberty, fit emblem of the only liberty it allowed — the liberty to die, or blaspheme God. The king placed it on his head, and wore it for three hours. Had he hesitated for a moment, he would have been stabbed to death. His heroic demean- our, when drinking a glass of water, which he had every reason to believe had been poisoned, excited the applause even of the friends who watched him. When at length a deputation of the Assembly arrived, headed by Vergniaud and Isnard, they found the king " unshaken in courage, though nearly exliausted by fatigue." One of the National Guard approached him to assure him of his devotion. " Feel," he replied, laying his hand on his bosom, " whether this is the beating of a heart agitated by fear." — Alison, vol, ii. p. 39. " Good heavens ! sir," exclaimed their horrified ques- tioner, " what could have induced you to witness so horrible a spectacle!" " Love of the cause, sir," was the prompt reply; and, in truth, many of the patriots who led or aided in the Irish Eebellion of 1798, were men like the Sheares, who had no personal or relative wrongs to redress, but who were im- pregnated with the revolutionary spirit of the day, and found in Ireland the field for action which their restless spirits desired/ ' The Sheares were natives of Cork, whither the younger proceeded in May 1798, for the purpose of organising that county. An energetic co-operator in this movement was a silversmith named Conway, a native of Dublin. The treachery of this man was so artfully concealed, that his most intimate friends never suspected him. " If those who join secret societies," writes a Cork correspondent, " could get a peep at the records of patriotic perfidy kept in the Castle, they would get some insight into the dangerous consequences of meddling with them. There is a proverbial honour amongst thieves ; there seems to be none amongst traitors. The publication of the official correspond- ence about the end of the last century made some strange revelations. In ^5" Cork, there lived a watchmaker, named Conway, one of the directory of the United Irishmen there. So public and open a professor of disloyal sentiments was he, that on the plates of his watches he had engraved as a device a harp without a crown. For a whole generation this man's name was preserved as 'a sufferer for his country,' like his ill-fated townsmen, John and Henry Sheares. The 'Cornwallis Correspond- ence' (vol. iii. p. 85) reveals the fact that Conway was a double-d}'ed traitor ; that he had offered to become a secret agent for detecting the leaders of the United Irishmen, and that the information he gave was very valuable, particularly as confirming that received from a solicitor in Belfast, who, whilst acting as agent and solicitor to the disaffected party, was betraying their secrets to the executive, and earning, in his r, Yi The Sheares were so exultant and ceiiain of success that they took little pains to conceal their project; a curious example of the fatuity of those engaged in the " secret society," which they were so desirous of pro- moting. The very quickness of the passage was made a subject of remark, and taken as omen of success, for they liad been twice wrecked on previous voyages, once when crossing to France, and once when crossing between Dublin and Parkgate. But if O'Connell was a pacificator in public life, it would appear that in his youth he had no objection to settle private feuds vi et armis. Some schoolboy quarrel arose at St Omers, and he had recourse to something stronger than moral force in the assertion of his rights. His fellow-student was not accustomed to pugilistic encounters, and said so. O'Con- nell inquired what he wished to fight with. " The sword, or pistols," replied the young Frenchman. " Then wait a vile r6h of iuformer, a pension, from 1799 to 1804, of ^150, and the sum of i!1460, the wages he received for his services." The Sheares, though nominally Protestants, were tinged with deistical ideas. " I heard it stated," observed Mr Patten, " that when the hangman was in the act of adjusting the noose round the neck of John Sheares, before proceeding to the scaffold, he exclaimed, ' D— n you, do you want to kill me before my time V I could not credit it, and asked the Kev. Dr Smith, who attended them in their last moments, if the statement were con-ect, ' I am sorry to say,' replied Dr Smith, 'that it is perfectly true. I myself pressed my hand against his mouth to prevent a repetition of the imprecation.' "—T/fe Sham Squire; or, the Rebellion in Ireland of 1798, p. 190. By W. J. Fitzpatrick, Esq., J.P. n u V. \*\ Nl ADJUSTMENT OF A QUARREL. moment," replied O'Connell; who left the hall only to retm'Q in a few moments, and offer his opponent the weapons he had named, begging he would take his choice, as it was just the same to him with what weapons he fought. The French youth declined further combat, and it is said that no one attempted any annoyance to O'Connell during the remainder of his brief residence at St Omers. It was at one time very frequently asserted that the Liberator had been intended for the priesthood. This mis- take arose naturally from the fact of his having been educated at St Omers, and from ignorance of the course of education pursued there. The college was originally founded for ecclesiastics, but there was also a separate foundation for secular students.® It is probable that the ° Florence Conry, Arclibisliop of Tuam, and founder of tlie IrLsh College of Louvain, was one of the first to suggest and to carry out tlie idea of supplying Irish youth with the means of education on the Continent, which they were denied at home. It is a fact, unexampled in the history of nations, that a whole race should have been thus denied the means of acquiring even the elements of learning, and equally un- exampled is the zeal with which the nation sought to procure abroad the advantages from which they were so cruelly debarred at home. At Louvain some of the most distinguished Irish scholars were educated. An Irish press was established within its halls, which was kept con- stantly employed, and whence proceeded some of the most valuable works of the age, as well as a scarcely less important literature for the people, in the form of short treatises on religion or history. Colleges were also established at Douay, Lisle, Antwerp, Toumay, and St Omers, principally through the exertions ofChristopher Cusack, a learned priest of the diocese of Meath. Cardinal Ximenes founded an Irish College at 72 O'CONNELL AND THE CHURCH. misapprehension was encouraged for political purposes, though O'Connell took pains to contradict it on more than one occasion. In a letter published in the Dublin Evening Post, July 17, 1828, he says :— " I was not intended for the Church. No man respects, loves, or submits to the Church with more alac- rity than I do, but I was not intended for the priesthood." As O'Connell gave his opinion on the French Eevolution very fully to Mr Daunt, and as that opinion has been re- corded by him, we shall do well to insert it at length. O'Connell was asked in the course of our after-dinner table-talk, " whether he had read Thiers' work on the French Revolution?" Lisbon, and Cardinal Henriquez foimded a similar establishment at Evora. It is a remarkable evidence of the value which has always been set on learning by the Catholic Church, that even in times of persecution, when literary culture demanded such sacrifices, she would not admit unedu- cated persons to the priesthood. 'Before 1793 there were four colleges at Douay. 1st, The grand college for secular students called the Grands Anglais. It was purchased by the French Government in 1820, and is now iised as an artillery barracks. 2d, The Scotch Col- lege, now occupied by a religious order. 3d, The Irish College, which is completely destroyed, and the site occupied by private houses. 4th, The Benedictine College, which still flourishes. It was built in 1768, and re-opened in 1818. " The Bishop of Ardagh told me," says O'Neill Daunt, " that a French captain of artillery said to him shortly after the trois jours de Juillet, ' Some of us imagined that your O'Connell was born at St Omers. Ah ! if he had been a native of our country we should have made him King of the French.' " Considering the fashion in which kings are made and unmade by our continental neighbours, we think O'Connell was quite as happy in having been >orn in Ireland. TEE FRENCH REVOLUTION. 73 " Yes," he replied, " and I do not very mneli like it. Thiers has a strong propensity to land every one who was snccessM, and to disparage those who did not succeed. The best account of the French Revolution is in one of the volumes of Marmontel's ' Memoirs.' Certainly," continued he, " that Revolution was grievously needed, although it was bought at the price of so much blood ! The ecclesi- astical abbes were a great public nuisance; they were chiefly cadets of noble families, who were provided for with sinecure revenues out of the abbey lands. The nobility engrossed the commissions in the army; and both the clergy and the nobility, although infinitely the richest bodies in the state, were exempt from taxes. The people were the scapegoats — they were taxed for all ; the burdens of the state were all thrown upon them, whilst its honours and emoluments were monopolised by the untaxed. This was a gross wrong— the Revolution has swept it away. It was highly creditable to the fidelity of the French Catholic clergy, that so few of them joined the enemies of religion at that trying time of error. I question whether a dozen of the French Catholic bishops apostatised ; and as for the vast mass of the parochial clergy, they afforded a most glorious and sublime example of devotion and faithfulness. Catholicity, I trust, will rebound against French Infidelity, as she is daily doing against English sectarianism." He then spoke of an article in the Edinburgh Review, and expressed his satisfaction that the writer was compelled to E * ,1 ,Ni r. i..^ ¥i 74 INTERVIEW WITH ROBERT OWEN. admit that "the Catholic religion is perennial and immor- tal ; and as vivacious in the nineteenth century of her existence, as she was the day of her first institution." O'Connell's abhorrence of anything which tended to undermine religious influence showed itself repeatedly in his conversations. The account which he himself gave of his interview with the secularist Owen is worth recording here as an evidence of this. " ' Owen called upon me,' said he, ' and told me he had come for my co-operation in a work of universal benevo- lence.' I replied that ' I should always be happy to aid such a work.' ' I expected no less from your character, Mr 0' Conn ell,' said Owen. ' Would not j'ou wish — I am sure you would — to elevate the condition of the whole hu- man race?' 'Certainly, Mr Owen,' replied I. 'Would not you wish to see a good hat on everybody ? ' ' Un- doubtedly.' 'And good shoes?' ' Oh, certainly.' 'And good trousers ? ' ' Unquestionably.' ' And 'would not you desire to see the whole family of man well housed and fed?' 'Doubtless. But, Mr Owen, as my time is much taken up, may I beg that you will proceed at once to point out how all these desirable objects are, in your opinion, to be worked out ? ' 'In the first place, Mr O'Oonnell,' said Owen, ' we must educate anew the population of these kingdoms, and entirely remove the crust of superstitious error from their minds. In fact, the whole thing, called Revealed Religion, must be got rid of.' O'GONNELL AT LINCOLN'S INN. I thouglit my worthy visitor was going too far. I rose and bowed him out. ' I wish you a very good morning, Mr Owen,' said I, ' it would be useless to prolong our inter- view. I see at once that you and I cannot co-operate in any work or under any circumstances.' " In 1794 O'Connell entered as a student in Lincoln's Inn, London. He lodged at first in a court on the north side of Coventry Street. Fifty years after, as he passed by the place, he called the attention of a friend to a fishmonger's shop, saying, " That shop is precisely in the same state in which I remember it when I was at Gray's Inn. It has the same-sized window, the same frontage, and I believe the same fish ! " While residing here, he followed his private occupation of writing, but his taste for a country life induced him to make a change of residence in 1795. He thus describes his new abode in a letter to his brother- Maurice : — " I am now only four miles from town, and pay the same price for board and lodging as I should in London ; but I enjoy many advantages here (in Chiswick) besides air and retirement. The society in the house is mixed — I mean composed of men and women, all of whom are people of rank and knowledge of the world ; so their conversation and manners are perfectly well adapted to rub off the dust of scholastic education ; nor is there any danger of riot or dissipation, as they are all advanced in life, another student of law and I being the only young persons in the house. This young man is my most intimate acquaintance, and the only friend I have found among my acquaintance. His name is Bennett. He is an Irishman of good family connections and fortune. He is prudent and strictly economical. He has good sense, ability, and application. I knew liim before my journey to Ireland. It was before that period our friendship commenced. So that on the whole I spend my time here not only pleasantly, but I hope very usefully. " The only law books I have bought as yet are the works of Espinasse on the trials of nisiprius. They cost me £1, 10s. ; and contain more information on the practical part of the law than any other books I have ever met. When in Dublin I reflected that carrying any more books than were absolutely necessary would be incurring expense ; so I deferred buying a complete set of reports until my return thither. "I have now two objects to pursue — the one, the attainment of knowledge ; the other, the acquisition of those qualities which constitute the polite gentleman. I am convinced that the former, besides the immediate pleasure that it yields, is calculated to raise me to honours, rank, and fortune ; and I know that the latter serves as a general passport : and as for the motive of ambition which you suggest, I assure you that no man can possess more of it than I do. I have indeed a glowing and — if I may use the expression — an enthusiastic ambition, which converts every toil into a pleasure and every study into an amusement. " Though nature may have given me subordinate talents, I never will be satisfied with a subordinate situation in my profession. No man is able, I am aware, to supply the total deiiciency of ability; but everybody is capable of improving and enlarging a stock, however small and, in its beginning, contemptible. It is this reflection that affords me consolation. If I do not rise at the bar, I will not have to meet the reproaches of my own conscience. It is not because I assert these things now that I should conceive myself entitled to call on you to believe them. I refer that con- viction which I wish to inspire to your experience. I hope — nay, I flatter myself — that when we meet again the success of my efforts to correct those bad habits wliicli you pointed out to me will be CATHOLIC CHURCH CONSERVATIVE. 77 apparent. Indeed, as for my knowledge in the professional line, that cannot be discovered for some years to come ; but I have time in the interim to prepare myself to appear with great 6clat on the grand theatre of the world." At this period of O'Connell's life he was undoubtedly a Tory. His account of his conversion to Liberal opinions is both curious and instructive, and it explains an intellectual and moral difficulty which has perplexed many English Protestants. The Catholic Church has always been conservative both in principle and in practice ; but because it has always set its face steadfastly against individual and public abuses, becaxise it has always taken the part of the oppressed against the oppressor, its policy has been misrepresented by those who desire to exercise arbitrary power unchecked, and misunderstood by those who are too indifferent or too prejudiced to reason calmly. And yet one of the most eminent English Protestant historians has admitted this truth, has proclaimed it, has asserted it. The historian of the French Eevolution writes thus : — " It was the Christian Church, the parent of so many lofty doctrines and new ideas, which had the glory of offering to the world, amidst the wreck of ancient institutions, the model of a form of government which gives to all classes the right of suffrage, by establishing a system which may embrace the remotest in- terests, which preserves the energy and avoids the evils of de- mocracy, which maintains the tribune, and shuns the strife of the forum. If THE CHURCH AND CIVILISATION. ■^ 'T "The Christian councils were the first examples of representative liA assemblies ; there were united to the whole Roman world there a priesthood, which embraced the civilised earth, assembled by means of delegates to deliberate on the affairs of the universal Church. When Europe revived, it adopted the same model. Every nation by degrees borrowed the customs of the Church, to her the sole depository of the traditions of civilisation. " It was the religion of the vanquished people, and the clergy who instructed them in this admirable system, which flourished in the councils of Nice, Sardis, and Byzantium, centuries before it was heard of in Western Europe, and which did not arise in the woods of Germany, but in the catacombs of Kome, during the sufferings of the primitive Church." ' The Catholic is conservative by religious belief; but by conservatism, be understands the protection and the pre- 7 Alison's History of Europe, vol. iii. p. 176.— Elsewhere he says : " The councils of the Church had, so early as the sixth century, introduced over all Christendom the most perfect system of rejpresentatioii. . . . Every Christian priest, however humble his station, had some share in the practice of these great assemhlies, by which the general affairs of the Church were to be regulated." In truth this system of conserva- tive and representative government has continued ia the Catholic Church with unbroken regularity from the first council at Antioch, where there was " much disputing " until Peter spoke, until the last council at Rome, where there was also much disputing until the voice of the Church spoke through the majesty of her pastors. Even the infidel Voltaire admitted tliat the Popes restrained princes, and protected the people. The Bull In Ccena Domini contained an excommunication against those who should levy new taxes upon their estates, or should increase those already existing beyond the bounds of right. Eor further information on this subject, see Balmez, European Civilisation, passim. M. Guizot says : " She [the Church] alone resisted the system of castes ; she alone maintained the principle of ec[uality of competition ; she alone called all legitimate superiors to the possession of power."— //is*. Oen. de la Civilization en Europe, Lect, 5, servation of right, the protection of human nature against itself by the enforcement of divine law. How much, how often, and how severely Catholics have suffered for conservative principles, let history relate. In Ireland they were faithful to the most faithless of monarchs. In England they were faithful to the most thankless, and one of the most unworthy of kings ; and this not from any preference for the foolish James, or the wanton Charles, but simply from active belief in the divine principle, " Render to Caesar the things that are Caesar's," from the divine principle of eternal right and justice. It may be objected, it has been objected, that Catholics have rebelled against their temporal sovereign, and the Irish Rebellion will be quoted as an evidence that Catholics can be, and have been, not only democratic, but even infidel. The exception proves the rule. Catholics have never rebelled against any temporal sovereign, unless such rebellion has been justified by the necessity for the conservation of the power of One higher than any earthly monarch ; and such resistances to any lawful constituted human rule have been rare.^ In France it was not Catholics, but those who had long * It is difficult to induce some persons to consider any such question calmly and dispassionately. Englishmen who think at all on the subj ect, are generally loud in their assertions of Irish disloyalty. Now there is a very wide difference between loyalty to a sovereign and approbation of all his acts, or the acts performed by his government. Every English monarch who has ruled Ireland has been treated with respect, and THE CLERGY AND THE REVOLUTION. ceased to be Catholics, who were guilty of regicide, and of crimes whose atrocity shocked the whole civilised world. The men who -dragged Louis XVI. to the scaffold, openly renounced all religious belief. The men who murdered Charles made a pitiful boast of their religion.^ In England, except during times of special persecution, which were comparatively rare, Catholics did not suffer from political or legal injustice. It is true, indeed, that they were denied the rights of citizens, but they were tolerated, especially when heavy fines could be obtained to replenish the coffers of needy or licentious monarchs. The fewness of their number protected them, and what was even those Irish, papers which write most strongly on the subject of English misgovernment, invariably respect the person of the sovereign. When the English nation rebelled against James II., he toot refuge in Ireland ; how he repaid Irish loyalty is but too well known and remembered in Ireland. " In France, though many of the clergy were corrupted by the deluge of evil which inundated the land, where, and because, all religious interests were withdrawn, there were yet a much larger number who were faithful. " The clergy in France were far from being insensible to the danger of this flood of irreligion which deluged the land." — Ali- son's History of Europe, vol. i., page 89. Again, " In a general assembly of the clergy, held in 1770, the most vigorous resistances against the multiplication of irreligious works were made. ' Impiety,' they said " ia making inroads alike on God and man ; it will never be satisfied till it has destroyed eveiy power, divine and human.' " — page 87. " It is a remarkable proof how completely ignorant the most able persons in Europe were of the ultimate efi'ects of this irreligious spirit, that the greatest encouragement which the sceptical philosophy of France received was from the despots of the north— Frederick the Great, and the Em- press Catherine." — page 88. ENGLISH CATHOLIC POLITICS. 81 of still more importance, united them. The very hopeless- ness of success, if they attempted to interfere in public affairs, kept them silent. Agitation would have been worse than imprudent, and they had so long learned to keep silence, to submit, to live apart from their fellows, to believe peace to be the one thing above all others to be desired, that they at last came to believe any demand for redress to be dangerous, if not positively wrong ; and any agitation to be imprudent to the highest degree, if not positively culpable. Hence the English Catholics, and especially the English Catholics of the upper classes, were necessarily conservative, and hence also many Irish Catholics of the upper classes, from association or intermarriage with English Catholics, became conservative also. Their few dependants believed as they believed, and thought as they thought. They also intermarried with each other, and lived apart, and they also feared all change, because, as a general rule, change was productive of evil. But with the great mass of Irish Catholics, with, in fact, all of the middle or poorest class mho thought, there was little love for Conservatism. Their state was such until the close of the last century (and it is of that period we write), that however their condition might be improved by any change, it could scarcely be injured. They had none of the English Catholic traditional love of, or reverence for monarchy. How, indeed, could they 82 IRISH CATHOLIC POLITICS. liave it ? They were told that a certain person was king of England, but whether that person was a William or a George was quite the same to them. It was a sound and nothing more. They heard indeed the name of their king, but they never saw him, they never even felt his influence. A royal birth or death was neither a subject of grief nor sorrow. They heard that such events occurred, perhaps long after they had happened, but for all practical interest or difiference which it made to them, the birth or the death of a New Zealander would have been just the same. But when they complained from time to time against injustice, or when they rebelled against it, then indeed they were made to feel the power of this distant sovereign, of this individual in whose name vindictive and cruel punishments were inflicted. Certainly they had no reason to uphold monarchy, to revere English law, or to desire to preserve English government, as it showed itself to them. They could not be conservative.'' ^ Wlen the Irish were not allowed even to rent a small piece of land, they called the little plot of earth which could not he denied them a " Protestant lease of the sod." It was in allusion to this penal law that the Irish rhymer made the attendants at the felon's wake sing— " But when dat we found him quite dead, In de dustcase we bundled his carcase. Tor a Protestant lease of the sod." —Sketches of Ireland Sixty Tears Ago, p. 89. Dublin, 1847. Colonel Jerids says : " To hold out the bribe of the father's property to conforming children, brought into play every ill feeling of which man \4 t'i THE WORST CHURCH IN CHRISTENDOM. 83 The influence of the Catholic faith, and the power of the Catholic priesthood alone prevented the Irish Celt from avenging his wrongs, not indeed with the ferocity of a Com- munist, for the Irish Celt has no taint of cruelty in his nature, but with the unflinching vengeance of a Eoman plebeian. It was precisely because many English Catholics failed to see the difference between their own position and the posi- tion of their Irish brethren, that they looked coldly upon O'Connell's career, that they would rather have kept their chains around them a little longer than have accepted release by the means which he used to obtain it for them. And yet, as we have said, O'Connell began life as a Conservative. His son thus describes the time and manner of the change : — is capable — impiety, ingratitude, hatred between fatter and son, brother and brother. But the penal law has never been found which could con- vert mankind to any one doctrine ; on the contrary, persecution breeds obstinacy, and the ignorant sinner becomes elevated into the proud martyr. Besides, in Ireland there were still no means of exemplifying to the masses the greater wisdom of the Church of England. The Pro- testant Lord Clarendon complained of the absence of the bishops in England, and of the disgraceful state of their dioceses. Queen Mary, as head of the Church, wrote to WiUiam when in Ireland to take care of it, 'for everybody agrees it is the worst in Christendom.' Many years later the Ulustrious Bishop Berkeley gave a sinular account. Confor- mity meant not a belief in Church of England doctrines, but a disbelief in revealed religion." — Ireland wider British Rule, p. 217. No one could desire the conservation of such a state of government, or manifest attachment to it. O'CONNELL A TORY IN HIS YOUTH. " On the 21st December 1793, the day the unfortunate Louis was beheaded at Paris, the brothers set out in a voiture for Calais, which they reached early on the morning of the 23d ; not, however, without some parting compli- ments from their friends, the soldiery ; who went so far as several times to strike the head of the vehicle with their musket stocks. The English packet-boat, aboard of which the boys proceeded with as little delay as possible, was pre- sently under weigh ; and as she passed out of the harbour, Mr O'Connell and his brother eagerly tore out of their caps the tricolor cockades, which the commonest regard for personal safety rendered indispensable to be worn by every one in France ; and, after trampling them under foot, flung them into the sea. This boyish outburst of natural execra- tion of the horrors which had been committed under that emblem, procured them a few of those sonorous curses which only a Frenchman can give, from some fishermen rowing past at the moment, by whom the cockades were rescued from the waves, and placed in their hats with all becomino- reverence. It is not to be wondered at that Mr O'Connell should, when, in 1794, he became a law-student in Lincoln's Inn, be in a state very nearly approaching, as he has often said, to that of a Tory at heart. " So strong and ardent were these feelings, that, the cele- brated trial of Hardy and others having occurred about this time (viz., October 1794), Mr O'Connell attended it daily, certainly not more for the mere interest of the thiu"- /vni 4 CONVERSION TO POPULAR OPINIONS. 85 or benefit of the law arguments to him as a student, than for the gratification of anti-revolutionary feeling, at seeing a supposed offender against law and social order in a fair way of receiving condign punishment. " To Mr O'Connell's astonishment, he found, ere the trial had proceeded far, that his sentiments were fast changing to those of pity towards the accused, and of something of self-reproach for having desired his conviction and punish- ment ; and, each successive day revealing more and more the trumped-up and iniquitous nature of the prosecution,^ the process of change in Mr O'Connell's mind ended by fully and finally converting him to popular opinions and principles, and confirming his natural detestation of tyranny, and desii-e of resisting it." Even Fox had been disgusted with this trial, and saw clearly the effect it would be likely to produce on the ^ This famous trial excited an immense sensation at the time. John Home Tooke had been, and according to English law was, a clergyman, having emhraced the ecclesiastical state to please his father, and very much against his own inclination. He was educated at Eton, and afterwards at St John's College, Cambridge. In 1773 he studied law. While a student he assisted Dr William Tooke upon an enclosure-bill, a subject which no doubt led him to consider popular politics, or rather to consider politics from the people's point of view. He took up the American War with more energy than discretion, condemned the con- duct of the government, and made a subscription for the widows and orphans of those Americans who had been " murdered by the king's troops at Lexington and Concord." He was the author of the elaborate " Diversions of Purley." John Thelwall was also a writer of some repu- tation. He retired to Wales after his acquittal, and died at Bath iii 1834. r. i^'^i public mind. He writes thus to Lord Holland, June 1794 :— " I think, of all the measures of Government, this last nonsense about conspiracy is the most mischievous, and at the same time the most foolish. How truly have they made good that parallel you drew between the Jacobins of France and the Crown party here ! If they succeed in committing and hanging any of these fellows whom they have taken up, it will be considered as a corroboration of the conspiracy, and a pretence for more extraordinary powers ; if they fail, as I rather think they will, then the consequence that always belongs to men who have been falsely accused and acquitted will attach to Home Tooke, Thelwall, and others like them, and possibly that danger which was only imaginary may in time become real by those wise man- oeuvres, which, unaccountably to me, my old friends think calculated to dispel it." The state of England at this period was scarcely less a subject of apprehension to public men than the state of Ire- land. The most fatal and disastrous calamities might have happened in that country if timely concession had not been made. In Ireland rebellion was wilfully and advisedly excited. In England every reasonable effort was made to conciliate. This is a fact which has been completely over- looked in considering the history of the period, when studied in connection with Irish politics. George III. ascended the throne in the year 1760. -r ^^ THE GEORGES AND THEIR MINISTERS. 87 His reign was an eventful one, but the circumstances which made it such were not turned to the national advantage. It may be questioned, indeed, whether the stolid Hanoverian princes were capable of a large or enterprising policy ; that they were capable of mistrust- ing ministers who were possessed of larger minds than their own, and of following ministers who were too pliant for effective service, the contemporary history of the period sufficiently proves.' Two great events of the age, the French Revolution and the revolt of the American colonies, reacted on English society. ^ Perliaps, however, some of his ministers were as much to blame for facility of acquiescence. Lord North's character is thus described by his own daughter, Lady Charlotte Lindsay : — " His character in private life was, I believe, as faultless as that of any human being can be ; and those actions of his public life which appeared to have been the most questionable, proceeded, I am firmly convinced, from what one must own was a weakness, though not an unamiable one, and which followed him through his life^he want of power to resist the iniluence of those he loved." — Appeindix to Lord Brougham's " Historical Sketches of States- men who flourished in the Reign of George III." Lord North was made Chancellor of the Exchequer in his thirty-sixth year. His parliamentary career commenced in 1754, and during Mr Pitt's iirst administration he occupied a seat at the Treasury Board. He was removed by the Rock- ingham ministry in 1765, but came into oflBce again with Lord Chatham as paymaster. A few days only before he became Prime Minister, one of his keenest opponents, Mr Burke, thus described him in the House of Conomons : — " The noble lord who spoke last, after extending his right leg a full yard before his left, rolling his flaming eyes, and moving his ponderous frame, has at length opened his mouth." — Speech of January 9, 1770, ' Pari. Hist" ivi. p. 720. ill r? and on English social life. The monarchs who preceded George III. were unpopular, partly because they were devoid of those personal attractions which fascinated the followers of the house of Stuart, and partly because they neither understood, nor took much pains to understand, their English subjects. The severity with which social crimes were punished only tended to increase them, and developed political agitations for which there was already sufBcient cause. The nation had ceased to speak of or believe in the divine right of kings. The person of the sovereign was no longer an object of respect. This democratic tendency of thought, reacted upon by the revolutionary spirit of France, which began by denying divine right, and ended by denying human justice, had its culmination in England in a per- sonal attack on the king, of which O'Connell was an eye- witness. Of this attack we shall speak more fully after entering into the details of the circumstances which pre- ceded it. George III., however, had two advantages, of which, how- ever, he was unfortunate enough not to have made the most. He was born in England, and he had just sufficient wit to see that this was a claim on the fealty of his English sub- jects. His private life was virtuous, and formed a con- trast to that of the majority of his predecessors.* ^ " When George II. had to receive the Holy Eucharist, his main GEORGE III. AND ROYAL SUPREMACT. 89 Unfortunately for himself, he was under the influence of the Earl of Bute. This influence was one which had taken its rise in his early life, and* under somewhat questionable circumstances. The king is said to have written his first speech to Parliament himself, but it was alleged that Lord Bute amended it, and substituted the word Briton for Englishman.^ This, certainly, gratified the Scotch party, if it did not merit the approbation of the Tories. The Whigs had been fifty-five years in office, but Tory prin- ciples, such as they then were, suited the king, who had wooden ideas on the subject of royal supremacy, for it was not the supremacy of divine right, but the supremacy of a wooden, unvarying rule. Eiots began early in this reign. The Whigs believed that Bute intended to undermine their power, and a.beer-tax, of which he got the credit, made him unpopular with the anxiety seems to have been that the sermon on that day might be a short one, since otherwise he was, to use his own words, ' in danger of falling asleep and catching cold.' "—Lord Mahon, Hist. v. p. 54. Bishop Newton says {Works, i. p. 76, ed. 1787), that he always took care in his sermons at Court to come within the compass of twenty minutes ; but after a hiat as to brevity, " on the great festivals of the Church, he never exceeded fifteen, so that the King sometimes said to the Clerk of the Closet, ' A good short sermon.' " ^ " I have heard it related," says Lord Mahon, iv. p. 212, " but on no very clear or certain authority, that the King had in the first place written the word 'Englishman,' and that Lord Bute altered it to ' Briton.'" The King's speech was admired by Frederick the Great.— Mitchell Papers, vol. v. No. 201, p. 148. ^ 90 THE WORST ENGLISH GOVERNMENT. n ,Ni people. There was a disturbance in the play-house the year after the king's accession.® The Bute administration lasted just ten months, and the Scotch lord went out of office, having made a peace which was unpopular because he made it, and leaving his own unpopularity as a bequest to his master. His family said that he retired from office for the sake of his personal safety 5 his own account of the matter was that he was afraid of involving his royal master in his ruin.^ The Grenville administration followed, and the king found himself lectured in his closet, and snubbed in his most innocent pursuits. Macaulay characterised this ad- ministration as the worst which ever governed England since the Revolution. The king bore the lectures as best ^ A few days after Lord Bute was sworn in to the Privy Council, a handbill was affixed to the Royal Exchange, with these words : — " No petticoat government, no Scotch favourites, no Lord George Saotville." A joke went round the Couit whether the King would have " Scotch coal, Newcastle coal, or Irish coal." '' " The alarms of Lord Bute's family about his personal safety are reported here to be the immediate cavise of his sudden abdication." — Memoirs of Rockingham, vol. i. p. 165. — " Single in a Cabinet of my own forming ; no aid in the House of Lords to support me, except two Peers (Denbigh and Pomfret) ; both the Secretaries of State (Lords Egremont and Halifax) silent ; and the Lord Chief Justice (Mansfield), whom I myself brought into office, voting for me and yet speaking against me— the ground I tread upon is so hollow that I am afraid not only of falling myself, but of involving my royal master in my ruin. It is time for me to retire." — Adolphus, vol. i. p. H7. See also " The Correspondence of George III. and Lord North," vol. i. p. Ixxi. ^ V, INAUGURATION OF CIVIL WAR. 100ES3D he could, but lie could not get even a small sum of money to purchase. some fields near the Queen's House. The Rockingham administration succeeded, and its mem- bers treated their sovereign " with decency and reverence ;" but Pitt could not work with them, and they could not work without Pitt. In 1763, on the 14th of March, G-eorge III. recommended a proper compensation to be made to the Americans for their expenses in the war of 1756. Almost on that very day twelvemonths, Mr Grenville brought forward his unfor- tunate resolution (9th March 1764), which inaugurated the civil war. " That towards defraying the said expenses, it may be proper to charge certain stamp-duties on the said colonies and plantations." In February 1765, this resolution passed into a law. The law passed with little anticipation of its fatal results. Burke sat in the gallery listening to the speeches, and declared he never heard " a more languid debate." The House of Lords did not even trouble themselves to debate. The truth was that English senators looked on the American colonies as a dependency which they could treat as they pleased. They forgot that the descendants of the sturdy race of men who fled from England to escape religious and political oppression, were scarcely likely to submit to it in their adopted country. They forgot that the descendants of such men were likely to be thinkers, to be men who would know their own interests. lOi 92 MISMANAGEMENT OF THE COLONIES. It was a brief history certainly, but it was none the less significant. The English government relied too much on the possible effects of their traditional reverence for that land from which they had expatriated themselves. That reverence did exist, but it was merely traditional. The moment the tradition was weakened by the stern logic of facts, its shattered links fell to the ground, and never again re- united. There were few men in England who grasped the diffi- culties of the case, who had sufficient intellect to look beyond the present, sufficient self-sacrifice to forego pre- sent gain when it was sure that it must be purchased at the cost of future loss. Burke indeed did his best. He warned the Grovernment that they were treating with an intelligent people, and with a people who not only loved justice, but thoroughly understood law,* a people " who snuffed the approach of ^1 ^ Buike, speaking of the education of the colonists, said : "I have been told by an eminent bookseller, that in no branch of his business, after tracts of popular devotion, were so many books as those on the law ex- ported to the plantations. The colonists have now fallen into the way of printing them for their own use. I hear that they have sold nearly as many of Blackstone's ' Commentaries ' in America as in England General Gage marks out this disposition very particularly in a letter on your table. He states that all the people in his government are lawyers, or smatterers in law ; and that in Boston they have been enabled, by successful chicane, wholly to evade many parts of one of your capital penal constitutions. . . . This study renders men acute, inquisitive, m 7 tyranny." Chatham did his best also, but the tide had set in the wrong direction ; and who could control an obstinate king, and ministers, some of whom were self-suffi- cient, and some of whom were self-interested ? But the public were not satisfied with contempt for Ameri- can intellect.® There was open contempt for American military power, and both public and private contempt was heaped on Franklin, one of America's greatest men. At- torney-Grenerals have not always distinguished themselves by prudence, but few men who have held that position in England have stultified themselves or their country so completely as Wedderburn, one of the Solicitor- Generals who ruled the legal destinies of England in the reign of G-eorge III. dexterous, prompt in attack, ready in defence, full of resources. In other countries tlie people, more simple, and of a less mercurial cast, judge of an ill principle in government only by an actual grievance ; here they anticipate the evil, and judge of the pressure of the grievance by the badness of the principle. They augur misgovernment at a dis- tance, and snuff the approach of tyranny in every tainted breeze." ^ In the debate of 16th March 1775, Lord Sandwich said : "The noble lord [Camden] mentions the impracticability of conq^uering America. I cannot think the noble lord can be serious on this matter. Suppose the colonies do abound in men, what does that signify ? They are raw, un- disciplined, cowardly men. I wish that, instead of 40,000 or 50,000 of these half-bred fellows, they would produce in the field at least 200,000, the more the better, the easier would be the conq^uest." Then he related an anecdote of Sir Peter Warren, and continued, — "Believe me, my lords, the very sound of a cannon will carry them, in his [Sir Peter's] words, as fast as their feet could carry them." — See " Life and Times of C. J. Fox," by Earl Russell. f>/j'l 1^^ BENJAMIN FRANKLIN. Banjamin Franklin was the son of a Boston merchant. Hebegau life as an apprentice tohis father's business, though it is said he was originally intended for the ministry in some religious persuasion. But the lad abhorred trade, and at last obtained service with his brother, a printer. After a time he removed to Philadelphia. Here he was noticed by the English governor. Sir William Keith, and it is said that he was deceived by him. Possibly Sir William only promised more than he could perform. The result was Franklin's removal to England as early as 1725, when he entered as a journeyman in the well-known and time- honoured establishment of Messrs Cox & Wyman, He returned again to America, where he married a rich widow, and published the famous "Poor Richard's Almanack." In 1757 he was sent to England as a delegate for Penn- sylvania. He returned once more to his native land, and iu 1764 and in 1766 he was examined at the bar of the English House. The members were anxious to prove that the American colonies Were contumacious, but all evidence goes to prove that they were not, and that they did not desire separation from England until they found that England compelled them to revolt. Franklin declared that " the authority of Parliament was allowed to be valid in all laws, except such as should lay internal taxes : that it was never disputed in laying duties to regulate commerce : that the Americans would never submit to the Stamp Act, or to any other tax on the same principle : that North \m America would contribute to the support of Great Britain, if engaged in a war in Europe." Washington wrote thus :— " Although you are taught to believe that the people of Massachusetts are rebellious, setting up for independency, and what not, give me leave, my good friend, to tell you that you are abused, grossly abused. This I advance with a degree of confidence and boldness which may claim your belief, having better oppor- tunities of knowing the real sentiments, of the people you are among, from the leaders of them, in opposition to the present measures of Administration, than you have from those whose business it is, not to disclose truths, but to misrepresent facts, in order to justify, as much as possible, to the world their own conduct. Give me leave to add, and I think I can announce it as a fact, that it is not the wish or interest of that government, or any other upon this con- tinent, separately or collectively, to set up for independ- ence ; but this you may at the same time rely on, that none of them will ever submit to the loss of those valuable rights and privileges which are essential to the happiness of every free state, and without which life, liberty, and property are rendered totally insecure."^ In the last debate of the Lords attended by Franklin, March 16th, 1775, he heard American courage, American religion, American intellect, branded as cowardice, hypo- ^ Spark's Life of Washington, vol. i. p. 130, 96 DYING TESTIMONY OF LORD CHATHAM. crisy, and diilness. " We were treated," he says, "as the lowest of mankind, and almost of a different species from the English of Great Britain ; but particularly American honesty was abused by some of the Lords, who asserted that we were all knaves, and wanted only by this dispute to avoid paying our debts." An eminent English writer says : — " On this occasion a few tongues helped to dismember an empire. Chatham's prophetic eye had discerned months before this memorable debate the issue of such zealotry. And in the month of November 1776, when America was ringing with the De- claration of Independence, and England was exasperated by what it considered as the sin of witchcraft, the Earl, being then very sick at Hayes, and not expecting to recover, solemnly charged his physician, Dr Addington, to bear testi- mony that he died with his opinions respecting America unchanged. He renewed a former prediction, that tmless England changed her policy, France would espouse the cause of the Americans. France, he said, only waited till England was more deeply engaged in this " ruining war against herself in America, as well as to prove how far the Americans, abetted by France indirectly only, may be able to make a stand, before she takes an open part by declaring war upon England." ^ Every one, to speak broadly, was against America ; '^ George the Third and Lord North, vol. ii. p. 9. certainly those "who defended her cause could be easily counted ; but it was unfortunate that the multitude were not a little more reserved in their expressions, that they so openly expressed their scorn for, and depreciation of, an enemy who overcame them so easily.* They forgot that contempt is not argument, and they forgot also " what extraordinary obstacles a small band of insurgents may surmount in the cause of liberty." * The American Congress held its first sittings at Phila- delphia on the 4th of September 1774. The members were willing to make peace, but they wisely prepared for war. The result is too well known to need further record. The " tea-tax " was but the last attempt to fetter a people who 3 Johnson, the lexicographer, had a share in exciting the popular feeling also. He wrote a pamphlet entitled " Taxation no Tyranny," but he forgot to say anything about the necessity for justice in taxation. He said : " One of their complaints is not such as can claim much com- miseration from the softest bosom. They tell us that we have changed our conduct, and that a tax is now laid by Parliament on those which [sic] were never taxed by Parliament before. To this we think it may be easily answered that the longer they have been spared, the better they can pay." " By a similar process of arguing," observes Mr Daunt, " Hampden might be shown to have been in arrear for ship-money, and Prynne for ears." All kinds of stories went the round in England on the subject of American incompetence, moral and physical. Farces were enacted in the theatres in which tailors and cobblers were described as samples of American soldiers. A young American officer who was present on one occasion, shouted out from his box, " Hurrah ! but Britain is beaten by tailors and cobblers." ^ Speech in the debates. G 98 DECLARATION OF INDEPENDENCE. were determined to be free, and wlio carried out tbeii- determination. The Declaration of Independence was signed on the 4th of July 1776, by Adams, Franklin, and Jefferson, and America became a nation and the home of the exiled Celt. To her and to them we say, Esto perpeUia. Thus we find America free at the birth of O'Connell, and at the same time we find the first indications of a union in feeling and principle between Ireland and America. It is a subject which ought to be of considerable interest to every Englishman, which is of the very deepest interest to every Irishman. If another war should break out between America and England — and with the pressure of the Irish vote on American politics, such an event might not require even the settlement of "Alabama" or any other claims to precipitate it — there can be no doubt that millions of expatriated Irishmen would join in the conflict with something more than ordinary military ardour. If, as we shall presently show, England was compelled to grant some trifling instalments of justice to Ireland, when threatened on all sides by peril at the close of the last century, it would be but common prudence on her part to make L'eland forget her past wrongs and her present sorrows. One of the things not generally known, or, if known, not generally considered, in connection with American inde- i AMERICA APPEALS TO IRELAND. 99 pendence, is the Address to the People of Ireland which ■was issued by Congress. They appeal to Ireland because they are " desirous of the good opinion of the virtuous and humane." " "We are desirous of the good opinion of the virtuous and humane. We are peculiarly desirous of furnishing you with the true state of our motives and objects, the better to enable you to judge of our conduct with accuracy and determine the merits of the controversy with impar- tiality and precision. Your Parliament had done us no wrong. You had ever been friendly to the rights of man- kind; and we acknowledge with pleasure and gratitude that your nation has produced patriots who have nobly distinguished themselves in the cause of humanity and America." Another thing not generally known, or not sufficiently considered, is, that some of the leading men in the Ameri- can revolt were Irish. Even then some few Celts had found their way to the land in which they were to obtain such numerical strength at a future day. Thompson, the secretary of Congress, was Irish. He had been agitating against England for ten years. Frank- lin corresponded with him frequently, and wrote to him from London, " The sun of liberty is set; we must now light up the candles of industry." Thompson's reply was significant, " Be assured we shall light up torches of a very different kind." Montgomery was an Irishman. He captured Montreal and died before Quebec/ O'Brien was an Irishman, and commanded in the first naval engagement with England. On the 2d of February, Walpole writes to Mann: — "We have no news public or private; but there is an ostrich-egg laid in America, where the Bostonians have canted three hundred chests of tea into the ocean, for they will not drink tea with our Parliament. . . . Lord Chatham talked of conquering America in Germany; I believe England will be conquered some day in New Eng- land or Bengal." ' See Burns' spirited lines ; — "Aud yet what reck ! he at Quebec, Montgomery-like did fa', man, Wi' sword in hand before his baud, Amang his enemies a', man." Cljapto C^irK ENTRY 0!f PUBLIC LIFE— POLITICAL SITUATION. 1775-1797- POLITICAL TROUBLBS IN EHGLAND — ATTACK ON THE KINa— FONDNESS FOE FIELD SPORTS — FEVBK — FIRST VISIT TO DUBLIN — ENGLISH POLICY -WITH IRELAND — FORCED ATTEMPT AT LEGISLATIVE JUSTICE — CAUSES AND CHARACTER OF THE IRISH REBELLION— GEATTAN — LORD CHARLEMONT IRELAND IN ARMS — ALARM IN ENGLAND — WANTS OF IRELAND — MR FOX REPEAL OF ACT VI. GEO. I. — CAUSES OP THE RUIN OF IRISH INDEPENDENCE — ENGLISH BRIBERY — GRAITAn's LETTER. 104 POLITICAL TROUBLES IN ENGLAND. The king was fully aware of the dauger, and wrote tkus to Lord North : — " Queen's House, October 25, 1775, 2 min. past 11 a.m. " Lord North, — On the receipt of your letter I have ordered EUiot's regiment to march from Henley to Hounslow, and the Horse and Grenadier Guards to take up their horses. These handbills are certainly spread to cause terror, but they may in the timid duke I saw yesterday, but I thank God I am not of that make. I know what my duty to my country makes me undertake, and threats cannot prevent me from doing that to the fullest extent."' In 1779, the king seemed to be recovered sufficiently to see the possible danger to English interests in Ireland. In a letter dated Kew, June 11, 1779, be says: "The present difficulties keep my mind very far from a state of ease. ... I have heard Lord North frequently drop that the advantages to be gained by this contest could never repay the expence ; I owne that, let any war be ever so successful, if persons will sit down and weigh the expences, they will find, as in the last, that it has impoverished the state, enriched individuals, and perhaps raised the name ' Coirespondence, vol. i. p. 20. — " Queen's House, afterwards Buck- ingham House, was bought of Sir Charles Sheffield by George the Third in 1761 for £21,000, and settled on Queen Charlotte, in lieu of Somerset House, by an Act passed in 1775. Here all the King's children were bom, George the Fourth alone excepted . The Queen's House was taken down in 1825 to make room for the present Buckingham Palace." — ■Cun- ningham's Handbook of London, p. 86, 2d ed. s ^^^ only of the conquerors ; but this is only weighing such events in the scale of a tradesman behind his counter ; it is necessary for those in the station it has pleased Divine Providence to place me to weigh whether expences, though very great, are not sometimes necessary to prevent what might be more ruinous to a country than the loss of money. The present contest with America, I cannot help seeing, as the most serious in which any country was ever engaged : it contains si;ch a train of consequences that they must be examined to feel its real weight. Whether the laying a tax was deserving all the evils that have arisen from it, I should suppose no man could alledge [5?c] that without being thought more fit for Bedlam than a seat in the Senate; but step by step the demands of America have risen : independence is their object ; that certainly is one which every man not willing to sacrifice every object to a momentary and inglorious peace must concurr with me in thinking that this country can never submit to : should America succeed in that, the West Indies must follow them, not independence, but must for its own interest be dependent on North America. Ireland would soon follow the same plan and be a separate state ; then this island would be reduced to itself, and soon would be a poor island indeed, for, reduced in her trade, merchants would retire with their wealth to climates more to their advantage, and shoals of manufacturers would leave this country for the new empire." 106 THE GORDON RIOTS. There was no question of Irish loss or gain, except in so f^ir as Irish loss or gain affected English interests, and it required a very much larger intellect than that of George III. to see that these interests were, or ought to be, iden- tical. About the same time the Duke of Richmond made a motion in the House of Lords, in which he said: "That in a moment so critical, the most awful this country had ever experienced, it would be deceiving His Majesty and the nation if they were not to represent that the only means of resisting the powerful combination which threatened the country would be by a total change of that system which had involved us in our present difficulties in America, in Ireland, and at home." The Gordon riots took place in 1780, and lasted from the 2d of June until the 9th. Parliament was unable to meet during this commotion. It was suspected that the French were the instigators of it, as at that time everything revolutionary was laid to their charge. The king wanted to have " examples made," and told Lord North he must " get to the bottom of it." A difficult task for that easy- going minister, who was scarcely capable of getting to the bottom of anything. In 1783 (July 24) the king expressed a strong opinion on the state of public affairs by no means complimentary to himself or his ministers : — " Undoubtedly there is less regularity in the modes of m y^ l-F J4^ M PI [4 conducting- business in this kingdom than in any other European, or the mode of calling a new parliament in Ireland ought to have been so clearly stated in the change of that constitution that no room ought to have been left for doubts as to the proper method of effecting it. But I fear folly, not reason, dictated the measure, and therefore it is not surprising every step has not been well weighed." In November he declared that " Ireland was in fact dis- united from England," and certainly not without cause. The volunteers had been organised, and the volunteers were determined to have justice done to their country, while England was unable to deny it in consequence of her own personal embarrassments. There was war in India also, and though this did not very much concern the nation at large, till some few honour- able men were roused by the recital of the horrible cruelties practised on the unhappy natives, it was not without its effect. The king and the Prince of Wales quarrelled, and the unhappy monarch exhibited the first symptoms of that malady which clouded his latter years. In 1795 all England was excited, turbulent, and violent. The war had necessitated increased taxation, increased taxation involved distress, and distress fell grievously on those who were least able to bear it. Men who could lose tliousands of pounds in a game of (Oj?5p ( 1 '.III ill fiTl 'I COCKXX 108 F UBLIC DISCOS TEXT. chance, or who could spend hundreds of pounds on mere luxuries, were not likely to understand the sharp suf- ferings of those who had not sixpence to spare for a luxury, who had not at times a penny to buy a loaf of bread. There were few who could even comprehend the terrible misery of starvation, and the terrible agony of seeing wife and child pining away for want of common sustenance.® Those who suffered thus were not likely to make nice distinctions as to the cause. The king as the ruler of the nation was naturally credited with being the origin of the 8 Alison's " History of Europe," vol. iii. p. 20, thus describes the state of England —"The condition of Great Britain in the close of 1795 and the beginning of 1796, was nearly as distracted, so far as public opinion went, as that of France. So violent had party spirit become, and so completely had it usurped the place of patriotism or reason, that many of the popular leaders had come to wish anxiously for the triumph of their enemies. It was no longer a simple disapprobation of the war which they felt, but a fervent desire that it might terminate to the dis- advantage of their country, and that the Republican might triumph over the British arms. They thought that there was no chance of parhamen- tary reform being carried, or any considerable addition to democratic power acquired, unless the ministry were deposed ; and to accomplish this object they hesitated not to betray their wish for the success of the in- veterate enemies of their country. These ill humours which were afloat during the whole of the summer of 1795, broke out into acts of open violence in the autumn of that year. These causes of discontent were increased by the high price of provisions, the natural consequence of the increased consumption and enlarged circulating medium required in the war, but which the lower orders, under the instigation of their dema- gogues, ascribed entirely to the ministry, and the crusade which they Lad undertaken against the liberties of mankind." ATTACK ON THE KING. 109 national troubles. The king it was supposed could remedy them, and did not do so, and popular vengeance sought to make the king the victim of its indignation. O'Connell was an eye-witness of this scene, and when he heard bitter reflections made, in later years, on the poor Irish peasant who attempted the life of a landlord who had deprived him of house, home, and even of the very possibility of labouring for an existence, it is little wonder that his honest heart burned with indignation when men condemned this, and lightly passed over an attempt at regicide which certainly had not the excuse of being excited by actual starvation. The attack on the king was made on the 29th of October 1795, as he was returning from Parliament. O'Connell went with a friend to St James' Park, little anticipating the extraordinary scene which he was to witness. He thus described it himself to Mr Daunt: "The carriage, sur- rounded by a noisy, angry, and excited mob, came moving slowly along. Suddenly the glass in the royal window was smashed by some individual in the crowd, who, having read the Bible, ''rendered unto Cassar the things that are Cesar's," by flinging a penny at His Majesty. The flash- ing sabres of the dragoons were drawn immediately, the loud voice of imperative command was ringing above the tumultuous sounds, and the dragoons, clearing their way through the huddled and scrambling multitude with bran- dished blades and curveting horses, advanced in a gallop in front of the king's carriage. As tlie procession approached tlie place where O'Oonuell stood he pressed forward to get a sight of the king, Avhen a dragoon made a furious slash at him, which deeply notched the tree about an inch or two above his head. Groans, hootings, and hisses filled the air, and the king's life seemed in imminent danger ; however, he got rid of his dutiful subjects, and entered St James's Palace, where he took off his robes in a -wonderfully short time. Pie then came out at the opposite side of the palace, next Cleveland Row, and entered a coach drawn by two large black Hanoverian horses. He was subsequently driven towards Buckingham House, and just as he was passing the bottom of the Green Park, the mob tumultuously swarmed round the carriage, seized the wheels, and, with united strength and horrible vociferations, prevented their revolu- tion, though the postilions, with desperate cuts, rained showers of blows on the straining and perspiring horses. The mob seemed intent on tearing the king to pieces. Two fellows at this moment approached the carriage— the hand of one was on the door-handle in the act of opening- it. Had the door opened they would doubtless have dragged the king headlong out and murdered him on the spot. At this critical juncture a tall determined-looking man thrust a pistol through the o}iposite window at the fellows who were going to open the door; they shrank back, the mob relaxed their grasp on the wheels, the postilions flogged their horses, and the carriage went off at a gallop to Buck- r« m O'CONNELL'S RETURN TO IRELAND. ingham House. Never had king a more narrow escape. It was a terrible scene." O'Counell returned home soon after, and some curiouK and characteristic anecdotes were told of his family life. For himself it is said that lie was passionately fond of field sports, and took care to make up now for lost time by double enjoyment. No doubt that hardy constitution which made him bear up under years of such mental and physical toil as few men have ever endured, was braced and invigorated by the fresh Atlantic breezes of his mountain home. His son thus describes him at this period : " Often has the writer of these pages heard him describe, in his own graphic manner, his going out before dawn, to ensure that his few hounds should have the help of the scent still lying; the feelings of the party as they crouched amid the heather, waiting for day; the larks springing all around, and the eager dogs struggling to get free from the arms that re- strained them. A wager — the only wager of Mr O'Connell's life — was successfully accomplished by him with four of these hounds; namely, the killing of four hares in three successive days. The four hounds, in fact, ran down and killed six liares in those three days, and vaulted anotlier — a feat which he boasts no four hounds now living could accomplish." The vice of hard drinking was not one in which the future Liberator indulged. He was temperate ; either from inclination, or from being unable to imbibe the ®_' copious potations which his companions considered almost a necessary of life. It is said that he was one of the tirst to break through the time-honoured rule that the door should be locked after dinner, and the key thrown out of the window until every guest had drunk to intoxication.' ^ Tliis practice was by no means confined to the wilds of Kerry, or in- deed to Ireland. At Shanes Castle, where Mrs Siddons often took part in private theatricals. Lord Mountjoy drew up in joke a set of rules for tlie company, which give an amusing idea of the state of society even in the highest circles : — "Resolutions formed to promote regularity at Shanes Castle, at the meeting for the representation of ' Cymbeline^ Nov. 20, 1785. " 1. That no noise be made during the forenoon, for fear of wakening the company. " 2. That there shall be no brealdfast made after four o'clock in the afternoon, nor tea after one in the morning. " 3. To inform any stranger who may come in at breakfast, that we are not at dinner. " 4. That no person be permitted to go out airing after breakfast till the moon gets up, for fear of being overturned in the dark. " 5. That the respective grooms may put up their horses after four liours' parading before the hall-door of the Castle. " 6. That there shall be one complete hour between each meal. " 7. That all the company must assemble at dinner before the cloth is removed. " 8. That supper may not be called for till five minutes after the last glass of claret. " 9. That no gentleman be permitted to drink more than three bottles of hock at or after supper. " 10. That all M.P.'s shall assemble on post-days in the coffee-room at four o'clock to frank letters." — Cormoallis' Correspondence, vol. ii. p. ?AQ. The free and easy style of living is as manifest from Rule 2, as the genial and general hospitality by Rule 5. COUSIN KANE. 113 O'Connell's favourite place in his uncle's house was the sideboard, where he found more freedom to indulge his jokes, and more liberty to come and go as he pleased. A certain "Cousin Kane," who enjoyed "free quar- ters " whenever he could get them — and when was hospi- tality ever refused in the "Green Island?"— was one of the county characters. Cousin Kane had that charming facility of accommodation which satisfied itself every- where, at least for a time ; and with his two horses and his twelve dogs, he quartered himself from week to week, now in one house and now in another, where he could, or said he could claim kin. Yet Cousin Kane's disposition does not seem to have been improved by his travels, for it is said that on one occasion there were seventy-six actions for assault and battery pending against him at the Tralee assizes. O'Conneli offended him once by giving him whisky instead of sherry in mistake. Kane drank the whisky at a draught, and then commenced vituperating his young cousin, con- cluding his harangue by roaring in a tone of thunder, " Fill it again, sir ! " On the following morning, Kane got up at two o'clock and wakened O'Conneli by his noise. "What are you about?" said O'Conneli, " the clock has only struck two." " Do you think I am to be a slave to that lying devil of a clock ye have there? " raved Kane. " Do you think a gentleman like me is to be ruled and governed by a black- guard of a clock like that— eh ? For what would I stay in H bed if it struck twenty- two when I cannot sleep ? " Mani- festly " Cousin Kane " would have been an ardent admirer of rule number four of the Shanes Castle code. In 1798, after O'Connell had been called to the bar, and before he went his first circuit, his life was despaired of, in consequence of his having taken a violent chill, which resulted in fever. His own eagerness in the chase was the immediate cause of this malady. His son thus records the circumstances, as related by his father ; — " Eagerness in the pursuit of this amusement had nearly cost him his life in the eventful year 1798 — the same in which he was called to the bar. After the latter occur- rence, which took place May 19, and before his first circuit, he proceeded, in August, to Darrynane ; and there, from a young man's imprudence in allowing wet clothes to dry on him while he slept before a peasant's fire after a hard morning's hunting, was, after the further imprudence of attempting, during a fortnight, to fight off the fierce assailant, prostrated by a most severe and dangerous typhus fever. Early in the disorder, he obtained a full conscious- ness of his danger, and retained that consciousness in the intervals of the fits of delirium, which came upon him violently and frequently. Whenever the mind was able to assert its self-control, his most constant and bitterest thought was, that he was about to die, without having been able to gratify the instinctive and innate feeling which from infancy had been uppermost in his mind — the feeling :N V, of craving, that it miglit be his lot to do something for Ireland ; and it is a curious fact that, in his ravings, he was constantly heard repeating the following lines from the tragedy of Douglas : — ' Untnown, I die ; no tongue shall speak of me : Some noble spirits, judging by tbemselves, May yet conjecture wbat I miglit have proved, And think life only wanting to my fame ! ' " An affecting incident marked the turn of the disorder. When, as he felt himself, and as he appeared to others, he was falling into his agony, his head had slipped from the pillow, and death would have been accelerated by the position, a cousin of his, who was present, raised him and supported him in her arms. "While for a moment revived by this, his father came to the bedside, and, after contem- plating him for a moment with agonised feelings, addressed him with ' Dan, don't you know me ? ' As with the last effort of nature, the son pressed the father's hand, in token of affectionate recognition ; and, with the effort, the fell disease, that had so long been triumphant, seemed to be, for the first time, arrested— the crisis arrived, twenty-four hours' sleep followed, and thenceforth began, and steadily continued, the restoration of health." During the same illness, Napoleon's successful march to Alexandria was mentioned in his presence. The acute mind, which at once grasped the impossibilities, as well as the possibilities of any plan, political or social, at once 116 FIRST VISIT TO DUBLIN. asserted itself. " ' That is impossible/ said the patient; ' he cannot have done so — they would have been starved.' ' Oh, no,' replied the doctor ; ' they had a quantity of portable soup, sufficient to feed the army for four days.' 'Ay,' replied O'Connell, 'but had they portable water? For their portable soup would be of little use without the water to dissolve it' The medical gentleman, glancing hopefully at the mother, said, in a low and satisfied tone, ' His intellect at any rate is untouched.' " O'Connell went to Dublin in the year 1797, probably with a view to further preparation for being called to the bar, possibly with the intention of making friends who might serve him in his new career. It would appear to have been his first visit to the Irish metropolis; — under how many different phases he must have seen it afterwards, under how many different circumstances he must have entered it ! He had witnessed the assembling of an Eng- lish parliament, he has now to witness the last debates of the Irish house. In England he had heard Pitt, and Fox, and Burke ; ^ in Dublin, he heard Grattan and Flood. In England he had seen the king attacked in open day 1 He spoke for the last time on the 20th of June 1794. His brother MM-^ Richard died during this year, and his death inflicted a deep blow on "*^ the sensitive heart of the great Irishman. "Dick" was indeed a uni- versal favourite. Every one loved him in the Ballitore Quaker school, where he was educated ; and if he was " wished full ten times a day at old Nick," not indeed by his friends, who would scarcely pardon such m ^1 4 HI pi CAUSHS OF THE REBELLION. by his own subjects, and only saved from an instant and terrible death by a military escort. In Ireland he was to be a witness to secret rebellion, and even to be personally compromised in it. The state of Ireland at that period was certainly alarm- ing, and has been unfortunately but too little understood. The broad outlines of contemporary history are indeed familiar to all educated persons. The manner in which the Irish rebellion was — shall we say encouraged, or excited by English statesmen ? — is admitted, because it cannot be denied, by some English historians ; the fraud and force by which the Union was effected is known equally well, but not, perhaps, generally believed. Nevertheless the real causes and the real effects of the rebellion and of the Union have scarcely met with the consideration they deserve, though the subject is one which deserves and would repay a careful study. Lord Townsend's administration had thoroughly debased the Irish parliament. It has been taken for granted, because the Irish Parliament was composed of persons who profanity, but \sj the poet who sings his praise, he was as surely wished back again. " What spirits were his, what art and what -whim, Now breaking a jest and now breaking a limb ! In short, so peculiar a devil was Dick, That we wished him well ten times a day at old Nick, But missing his mirth and agreeable vein, As often we wished to have Dick back again." 1 118 TEE IRISH .PARLIAMENT. lived, at least, part of their lives in Ireland, that it repre- sented Irish feeling. It is true, indeed, that there were a few men in it from time to time who were incorruptible and independent, who had Irish interests, and who would make sacrifices for them ; but the great majority had no interest in Ireland. It was indeed the country from whence they drew their rents, and which supplied them with their income, but they were aliens from the people in religion and in affection. English interest was still the ruling motive of every enactment of this so-called Irish Parliament ; and yet, because the Parliament was Irish, because it had an Irish element in it, Ireland prospered during its later years, as Ireland had never prospered before. Still the one fatal policy prevailed, and the one fatal principle was carried out. Ireland was not treated as an integral part of the British Empire. Her interests were not even considered for a moment, and if they were con- sidered, it was only that they might be treated as some- thing absolutely inimical to English prosperity. It was a curious policy, it was an unwise policy, it was a fatal policy. If one-half the money which was spent in repressing Irish rebellions had been spent in promoting Irish industry, there would have been no rebellions to repress, and Eng- land might have enriched herself, instead of adding a heavy item to her national debt, and throwing an additional weight of obloquy on her national character. m lift CHARLES I. AND HIS IRISH SUBJECTS. 119 But in consideriDg this period of Irish history, Irishmen have sometimes forgotten that the English House of Com- mons was quite as venal as that which sat in Dublin. The English nation had been for years, indeed since the very first hour of its intercourse with Ireland, educated and imbued with an anti-Irish feeling. Even Charles I. dared not repeal Poyning's Act, though, by so doing, he had at least a chance of saving hiraself from his English subjects by conciliating his Irish subjects. He took in the full extent of his position. The Irish were Irish and nothing more. He may not, indeed, have deliberately selected to be murdered by his English subjects in preference to being defended by his Irish subjects ; but undoubtedly he weighed the matter carefully, and practically he concluded that, though the Irish might be his faithful subjects, they were very powerless to protect him against his rebellious sub- jects, while there was not one but thousands of Crom- wells in Engl9,nd. Charles I. was right; he might be spared by these blood-thirsty men, but if he sought protec- tion from his Irish subjects, these men would effect their end sooner or later, arid involve him and his defenders in one common ruin, The conditions of Irish political life before the close of the last century were sufficiently ominous, but the condi- tions at the close of that century are without parallel in the annals of history. The American war, or rather the evident probability that a m the American war would be successful, &st roused up the English mind to the necessity, for its own sake, of doing something for Ireland. The problem then became how to do as little as possible ; unwillingness to do that little made it be done as ungraciously as possible. When you fling a trifling alms to a relation whom you have systematically defrauded, because you fear he may now have it in his power to retaliate, you can scarcely expect him to over- whelm you with gratitude, or to forget past wrongs. Yet the Irish are constantly reproached with being the most ungrateful people on the earth because they do not go into ecstasies of thankfulness for the smallest instalment of justice. Neither individuals nor nations are to be respected who sacrifice their personal dignity. The American war thus created a necessity for justice, and on the 10th of November 1773, leave was given to bring in a bill to secure the repayment of money that should be lent by Papists to Protestants on mortgages of land, and to show the extra condescension of this act of very accurate legal justice, of justice which one might suppose could not be denied by one man to another, the bill was brought in by Mr Mason, Sir Lucius O'Brien, and Mr Langrishe, who were " government men." It might be supposed that any body of educated men would pass the bill, but it was not passed. Leave was also given to bring in a bill to allow Papists to take leases of houses and of lands. It might be supposed CATHOLICS BRITISH SUBJECTS. 121 that at the close of the eighteenth century such a bill would certainly pass. It was rejected also.* American affairs began to look still more threatening, and on the 5th of March 1774, leave was given to bring in a bill to permit Catholic subjects to testify their allegiance to their sovereign. This bill was passed, and the Irish historian Plowden says : " It gratified the Catholics, inas- much as it was a formal recognition that they were sub- jects, and to this recognition they looked up as to the corner- stone of their future emancipation." Emigration to America had already begun. Had there been greater facilities the emigration would have been greater. What indeed were men to do who were neither allowed to live nor to labour, and who were not recognised even as subjects until now — who were, even after this pitiful recognition, treated virtually as rebels even in time of peace ? * '^ The animus wMoh existed iii all classes of English is strongly shown in some of George III.'s letters. He writes thus to Lord North on March 29, 1776 : " I have, both in the times of Lord Hertford and of Lord Townshend, declined making Irish marcLuises, and I have not in the least changed my opinion on that subject, I am heartily sick of Lord Harcouit's mode of trying step by step to draw me to fulfil his absurd requests. I desire I may hear no more of Irish marciuises ; I feel for the English earls, and do not choose to disgust th.em:'— Correspondence of George III., vol. ii. p. 16. It was the same principle of making a dis- tinction between English and Irish subjects which made James I. cry out, " Spare my English subjects," when the Irish were fighting for him to the death. ^ We find George III. writing in a specially contemptuous style of his H* 122 THE REBELLION A PROTESTANT MO YEMEN T. How completely the rebellion of 1798 was a Protestant movement lias never been clearly understood. It is true, indeed, the great mass of those who rose were Catholics, but that was simply because the Catholics formed an over- whelming majority of the population. The leaders were Protestants ; and how this came about we shall proceed to show. Trade was permitted spasmodically in the north of Ireland, because the people in the north of Ireland were principally Protestants, and were many of them of Scotch and French descent. But this by no means saved them from the ill-judged, miserable policy of their English rulers. The volunteer movement began in Belfast, and Cork, which American subjects, Tintil ttey proclaimed their independence. In a letter dated July 4, 1774, he writes very boldly of "compulsion;" tlie English " lyons " however got the worst of it : — " Since you left me this day, I have seen Lieutenant-General Gage, who came to express his readiness, though so lately come from America, to return at a day's notice, if the conduct of the Colonies should induce the directing coercive measures. His language was very consonant to his character of an honest determined man. He says they will be lyons whilst we are lambs ; but, if we take the resolute part, they will undoubtedly prove very meek. He thinks the four regiments intended to relieve as many regiments in America, if sent to Boston, are suiiicient to prevent any dis- turbance. I wish you would see him, and hear his ideas as to the mode of compeUing Boston to submit to whatever may be thought necessary ; indeed, all men seem now to feel that the fatal compliance in 1766 has encouraged the Americans annually to increase in their pretensions to that thorough independency which one state has of another, but which is quite subversive of the obedience which a colony owes to its mother country." — Correspondence, vol. i. p. 36. JEALOUSY OF IRISH TRADE. was then an ultra- Protestant city, supplied two of the lead- ing spirits of the rebellion in the persons of the Shearses. Both Cork and Belfast suffered most severely from English laws, made to restrain, or, to speak more accurately, to ruin Irish trade.* ^ Sir William Temple wrote thus in 1673 : " Regard must be had to those points wherein the trade of Ireland comes to interfere with that of England, in which case the Irish trade ought to be declined, so as to give way to the trade of England." A pamphlet on trade, published in London, 1727, apologises for op- posing what it states as " the universally received opinion that it were better for England if Ireland were no more ! " And the writer grounds this opposition on his conviction that such are Ireland's natural advan- tages for commerce, that her trade would increase greatly if the restric- tions then existing were taken off ; and the consequence would be, that " the drafts of England upon her would be increased, and the greater part of Ireland's gains by trade would centre in England ! " Anderson, in his " History of Commerce," openly declares.the English jealousy of Irish commercial enterprise. Coombe, who continued An- derson's work, comments with rather too considerate, but stiU a decided tone of censure, on the oppressive and tyrannous line of conduct adopted in conseqiuence of that jealousy. Arthur Young, in 1776, wrote thus : " British legislation, on aU oc- casions, controlled Irish commerce with a very high hand — universally on the principle of monopoly, as if the poverty of Ireland were her wealth." Pitt in 1785 bore the same testimony ; and agaia in 1799. On the latter occasion, he said : " Ireland long felt the narrow policy of Great Britain, who, influenced by views of commercial advantage, and stained with selfish motives, never looked on her prosperity as that of the empire at large." Mr Huskisson, in 1825, added his testimony to the same effect : — " Till 1780 the agriculture, internal industry, manufactures, commerce, and navigation of Ireland, were held in the most rigid subserviency to the supposed interests of Great Britain. In 1778 there was a proposal to (1 '1 1 ^ Uf iM 124 THE VOLUNTEER MOVEMENT. In 1759 the Belfast people were obliged to arm them- selves in self-defence, and the English Government was obliged to permit, and even to encourage this movement, to prevent the French landing in Ireland. Three companies of volunteers were formed, and the spirit of the Irish was roused for the first time during the past half century. Volunteer companies started up everywhere, but this ar- rangement did not suit the English Grovernment. It is true, indeed, that these volunteers were all Protestants, but Protestants were quite as likely to use their arms against oppression as Catholics, and even more so. The Lord- Lieutenant was requested to put down the movement, but it was not easy to do so. In 1779, when Protestant discontent became still more formidable, the Lord-Lieutenant wrote to Lord Weymouth on this subject : — "The seizing their arms would, therefore, be a violent expedient ; and the preventing them from assembling, without a military force, impracticable ; for when the civil magistrate will rarely attempt to seize an offender suspected of the most enormous crimes, and when convicted, convey him to the place of execution without soldiers, — nay, when, in many instances, persons cannot let her import sugar direct, and export all but woollens, to pay for it ; and this, proposal was almost made a question of allegiance by the great towns of Great Britain, and so lost ! But towai-ds the close of that year the disasters in America, and the state of things in Ireland, produced a different feelincj in the British Parliament. State necessities, acting under a sense of political danger, yielded, without grace, that which good sense and good feeling had before recommended in vain I" tvunrmi i be put into possession of their property, nor, being possessed, maintain it without such assistance, — there is little presumption in asserting that unless bodies of troops be universally dispersed, nothing can be done to effect." Nevertheless the Irish Protestants were so infatuated, or so ignorant, as not to see that their true interest lay in union with the Catholics, that a nation divided against itself could no more prosper than a divided family. In May 1778, a bill was brought in to permit Catholics to hold land, and was fiercely petitioned against by the Protestant party. It was necessary, however, for Govern- ment to conciliate the Catholics, so the bill passed by a small majority. But nothing was don£ for the benefit of trade. Poverty and destitution reigned supreme. Ireland was forbidden commerce, was obliged to pay tithes to a Church which she abhorred, and to support the priests of her own religion. She was compelled to pay taxes for the maintenance of a military force to compel her to remain silent under her cruel wrongs, and to support an army for the subjugation of the only country from which she had any hope of redress. England began to be alarmed. There were certainly some few men of the realm with sufficient common sense to see the fatuity of the present course of Irish government ; amongst the number were Lord Newhaven and the Marquis of Rockingham. Lord Temple, who held the unenviable post of Lord-Lieu- (^. tenant in Ireland, proposed a committee to inquire into the distress of the nation. But the nation was tired of pro- mises, and on the 4th of Noveniher 1778, the volunteers paraded Dublin. They had two field-pieces with them, and bearing a significant inscription — " Free Tkadb — or this." The result was that an act allowing free trade between Ireland and the British Colonies received the royal assent on the 24th of July 1780. This concession was obtained merely by the physical force argument of the volunteers. On the 24th of November 1779, Grattan moved in the House of Commons that it was then inexpedient to grant new taxes. Ireland was plunged in the deepest and most abject poverty through no fault of her own, and England asked new subsidies from this nation which she had herself deprived of all means of enrichment! The motion was carried by a majority of over one hundred ; and on the following day the opposition resolved, by a majority of one hundred and thirty-eight to one hundred, that the new duties should be for six months only. Dur- ing the debate, when Mr Brough the prime serjeant ex- claimed, " Talk not to me of peace. Ireland is not in a state of peace, it is smothered over," — the house, thrilled to the core, rose in a body to cheer him.* Certainly there was Nf ' Life of Grattan, vol. i. ch. 17 ; Memoirs of the Court of George III. ^M^ ^^L 2^^^S ^ some public spirit in Ireland then, and the man who evoked that spirit, who gave it body and active life, was Grattan. His father had been recorder of Dublin for many years, and he was therefore initiated into Irish politics from his very childhood. He was endowed by nature with great gifts of eloquence, and with that noble spirit of justice without which eloquence is a curse, for it only leads men, not indeed to admire, but to practise tyranny. During his early life he spent much of his time at Marley Abbey, the residence of his uncle, where he learned to admire the writ- ings of Swift, and in some degree imbibed their spirit. Grattan entered Parliament as member for Lord Charle- mont's borough of Charlemont, situated on the borders of Armagh and Tyrone. He was then in his thirtieth year. Whatever may be said of electoral intimidation in the pre- sent age, of close or open, of rotten or honest, of saleable or unsaleable boroughs, there is nothing even faintly approach- ing the state of parliamentary representation at the close of the eighteenth century. The process of election was simple, and, after all, it had the merit of simplicity. The lord of the , soil was the lord of the tenant's parliamentary conscience. There was no doubt about the matter — no question about the matter. He sent down the candidate of his choice ; whether that choice was directed by political or pecuniary motives, mattered little. It was nothing to the free and independent electors certainly. They knew their duty, and 128 "NO IRISH NEED APPLY." 5-^ they did it. If they failed God might help them, but there was no help from mau. To have granted the lord of the soil the unlimited right of returning a member for his borough, would have saved a good deal of trouble, a good deal of expense, and a good deal of bitterness, but the arrangement does not seem to have been thought of, and certainly it would have looked unconstitutional. After all there is nothing like making a sham look legal and respectable. Men like Grattan got into Parliament now and then, when there were men like Lord Charlemont to nominate them ; but there were not many Lord Gharlemonts in Ireland, and certainly there were not many Grattans. Lord Charlemont's conversion to Irish nationality, such as it was, arose from an open expression of English con- tempt for Irish peeresses. The whole affair is curious and instructive. A grand procession of peers and peeresses was arranged to meet the unfortunate Princess Caroline, but, before the Princess landed, the Duchess of Bedford was commanded to inform the Irish peeresses that they were neither to walk nor take any part in the procession. It was carrying out the trite saying, " No Irish need apply," in high life. This might be done with impunity and with approbation where the lower classes of Irish were concerned, but the peeresses resented it. Lord Charlemont had spent seven years abroad, and was not accustomed to the unedifying LORB CHARLEMONT. 129 spectacle of a nation divided against itself— of one half of the body politic despising the other half. He warmly resented the insult, and by his efforts obtained a reversal of the order. But he did not forget it. For a time at least he took part with the oppressed nation to which he be- longed, but it was only for a time. The tide of public opinion in his own rank in life set strongly against him. Neither Ii-eland nor Irish politics were fashionable. It was well to be a peer certainly, even though he might be an Irish peer; but the less Irish he appeared, the more he would be respected by his fellows. What indeed were popular laudations in comparison with the approbation of his own immediate circle ? On the 27th of March 1782, Charles Sheridan wrote thus to his brother Richard : — "As to our politics here, I send you a newspaper ; read the resolutions of the volunteers, and you wUl be enabled to form some idea of the spirit which pervades the country. A declara- tion of the dependency of our Parliament upon yours will cer- tainly pass our House of Commons immediately after the recess. Government here dare not, cannot oppose it : you wUl see the volunteers have pledged their hves and fortunes in support of the measure, the grand juries of every county have followed their example, and some of the staunchest friends of Government have been, much against their inclination, compelled to sign the most spirited resolutions." ° The volunteer movement, as we have said, began in 8 Life of Grattan, vol. ii. p. 214. ,11 ¥, Belfast ; when the necessity was over, the corps were dis- banded ; but they refused in 1778, when there were again reports and fears of a French invasion. In January 1779, Lord Charlemont assumed the com- mand of the Armagh volunteers. The Government did not like it. They had a choice of evils. Protection against a foreign foe was needed, but there were grave fears lest the protectors against a foreign foe might turn out domestic enemies. The English were thoroughly aware of the state of Irish feeling, though they took no pains to reconcile it. In May 1779, Lord Rockingham wrote thus to Lord Weymouth : — " Upon receiving oflficial intimation that the enemy meditated an attack upon the northern parts of Ireland, the inhabitants of Belfast and Carrickfergus, as Government could not immediately afford a greater force for their protection than about sixty troopers, armed themselves, and by degrees formed themselves into two or three companies ; the spirit diffused itself into different parts of the kingdom, and the numbers became considerable, but in no degree to the amount represented. Discouragement has, however, been given on my part, as far as might be without offence, at a crisis when the arm and good-will of every individual might have been wanting for the defence of the state." The volunteers were in fact working up the country with a steady energy, with a quiet determination, that must have been' terribly embarrassing to the Government. Those who thought at all, who looked ever so little beyond the narrow sphere of their self-interest, asked themselves what would be the end of all this ? It was impossible to raise a " No Popery!" cry against them, however desirable, for they were all Protestants, and, being Protestants, though they were Irish, they could scarcely be shot down like dogs. Moreover, they were headed by men of high respectability, by men of rank and position. When they met at Dungannon, on the 15th of February 1782, Colonel Irvine took the chair, and the following are but a few of the names of those who signed the resolutions : — Viscount Enniskillen, Colonel Mervyn Archdall, Colonel William Irvine, Colonel Robert M'Clintock, Colonel John Ferguson, Colonel John Mont- gomery, Colonel Charles Leslie, Colonel Francis Lucas, Colonel Thomas M. Jones, Colonel James Hamilton, Colonel Andrew Thomson, Lieutenant-Colonel C. Nesbitt, Lieutenant-Colonel A. Stewart, Major James Patterson, Major Francis Dobbs, Major James M'Clintock. The following are some of the resolutions ; we do not give them all, because of their length, our present object being merely to give a general outline of the state of Ireland when O'Connell commenced his public career : — " Whereas, it has been asserted that volunteers, as such, can- not with propriety debate, or publish their opinions on political subjects, or on the conduct of Parliament or political men. " Resolved, unanimously, That a citizen by learning the use of arms does not abandon any of his civil rights. " Besolved, unanimously, That a claim of any body of men, other than the King, Lords, and Commons of Ireland, to make I Ml''} ^ m I) ]aws to bind this kingdom, is unconstitutional, illegal, and a grievance. " Eesolved, with one dissenting voice only, That the powers exercised by the Privy Councils of both kingdoms, under, or Under colour or pretence of, the law of Poyning's, are unconstitutional, and a grievance. " Eesolved, unanimously, That the ports of this country are by right open to all foreign countries not at war with the king ; and that any burden thereupon, or obstruction thereto, save only by the Parliament of Ireland, is unconstitutional, illegal, and a grievance. " Resolved, with two dissenting voices only to this and the following resolution. That we hold the right of private judgment, in matters of religion, to be equally sacred in others as ourselves. " Besolved, therefore, That as men and as Irishmen, as Chris- tians and as Protestants, we rejoice in the relaxation of the penal laws against our Eoman Catholic fellow-subjects, and that we conceive the measure to be fraught with the happiest conse- quences to the union and prosperity of the iniiabitants of Ireland." The two last resolutions are noteworthy. For the first time Protestants seem to have obtained some glimmering light on the subject of religious liberty. It was a new discovery ; yet one should think it ought to have been an established axiom, that " the right of private judgment in religious matters," if it existed at all, must exist equally for all. The relaxation of the penal code was but a neces- sary consequence of this conclusion ; the entire removal of every disability— social, political, or domestic— would be but the natural end. Burke thus describes the pitiful concessions which were the result. His observations might be studied with advan- tage even at the present day. Liberal-minded, or to speak more correctly, large-minded Protestants need to be re- minded of Ireland's past grievances, of the terrible strug- gles which she was obliged to make in order to obtain even the most trifling act of justice. Those who are prejudiced might perhaps lessen their prejudice, if they have not suffi- cient intellect to discard them by studying the argu- ment of one of England's most famous senators, though his birth was Irish : — " To look at the bill in the abstract, it is neither more nor less than a renewed act of universal, unmitigated, indispensable, ex- ceptionless disqualification. One would imagine that a bill in- flicting such a multitude of incapacities, had followed on the heels of a conquest made by a very fierce enemy, under the impression of recent animosity and resentment. No man, on reading that bill, could imagine that he was reading an act of amnesty and indulgence. This I say on memory. It recites the oath, and that Catholics ought to be considered as good and loyal subjects to his majesty, his crown, and government; then follows a uni- versal exclusion of those good and loyal subjects from every, even the lowest ofiice of trust and profit, or from any vote at an election ; from any privilege in a town corporate ; from being even a freeman of such corporations; from serving on grand juries ; from a vote at a vestry ; from having a gun in his house ; from being a barrister, attorney, solicitor, &c., &c., &c. " This has surely more of the air of a table of proscriptions than an act of grace. What must we suppose the laws concern- ing those good subjects to have been of which this is a relaxa- tion 1 When a very great portion of the labour of individuals goes to the State, and is by the State again refunded to indi- lOs 134 GRATTAN ON THE PENAL CODE. viduals through the medium of offices, and in this circuitous pro- gress from the public to the private fund, indemnifies the families from whom it is taken, an equitable balance between the Govern- ment and the subject is estabhshed. But if a great body of the people who contribute to this State lottery, are excluded from all the prizes, the stopping the circulation with regard to them must be a most cruel hardship, amounting in eifect to being double and treble taxed, and will be felt as such to the very quick by all the families, high and low, of those hundreds of thousands who are denied their chance in the returned fruits of their own industry. This is the thing, meant by those who look on the public revenue only as a spoil ; and will naturally wish to have as few as possi- ble concerned in the division of the booty. If a State should be so unhappy as to think it cannot subsist without such a barbarous proscription, the persons so proscribed ought to be indemnified by the remission of a large part of their taxes, by an immunity from the offices of public burden, and by an exemption from being pressed into any military or naval service. Why are Catholics excluded from the law ? Do not they expend money in their suits 1 Why may not they indemnify themselves by profit- ing in the persons of some for the losses incurred by others ? Why may they not have persons of confidence, whom they may, if they please, employ in the agency of their afiairs 1 The ex- clusion from the law, from grand juries, from sheriffships, under- sheriffships, as well as from freedom in any corporation, may subject them to dreadful hardships, as it may exclude them wholly from all that is beneficial, and expose them to all that is mischievous in a trial by jury." Grattan exclaimed — " So long as the penal code remains, we never can be a great nation; the penal code is the shell in which the Protestant power has been hatched, and now it is become a bird, it must burst the shell asunder, or perish in it. I give my consent to the LORD CHARLEMONT'S LETTER. clause in its principle, extent, and boldness, and give my consent to it as the most likely means of obtaining a victory over the prejudices of Catholics, and over our own. I give my consent to it, because I would not keep two millions of my fellow-subjects in a state of slavery ; and because, as the mover of the Declaration of Eights, I should be ashamed of giving freedom to but six hundred thousand of my countrymen, when I could extend it to two millions more." The state of Ireland was causing general alarm in Eng- land. Lord Charlemont wrote to Mr Fox the bold words : ^^ I am an Irishman ; I pride myself intke appellation.'"'' The m ' We give a considerable portion of Lord Charlemont'a letter. The original may be found both in Hardy's " Life of Lord Charlemont," and in the Fox Correspondence : — "DOBLIN, \lth April, 1782. "No man can be more rejoiced than I am at this late happy, though tardy, change. I rejoice in it as a friend to individuals, but more espe- cially as a member of the empire at large, which will probably be indebted to it for its salvation. I hope also, and doubt not, that I shall have reason to rejoice in it as an Irishman, for I cannot conceive that they who are intent upon the great work of restoring the empire, should not be ardently attentive to the real welfare of all its parts ; or that true Whigs, genuiae lovers of liberty, whose principles I know, honour, and strive to imitate, should not wish to diffuse this invaluable blessing through every part of those dominions whose interests they are called upon to administer. The appointment of the Duke of Portland, and of his secretary, is a good presage. I know and respect their principles, and should be truly unhappy if anything in their conduct respecting this country should prevent my perfect co-operation with them. For, my dear sir, with every degree of affection for our sister kingdom, with every regard for the interests of the empire at large, I am an Irishman ; I pride myself in the appellation, aaid will in every particular act as such, at the same time declaring that I most sincerely and heartily concur with you in thinking that the interests of England and of Ireland can- volunteers were feared certainly, but the spirit which the volunteers had evoked was feared, and should have been feared a great deal more. Irishmen had been so long treated as inferiors, that they had begun to acquiesce in this treatment, passively at least. Their new assertion that they were men who had rights, their new perception that it needed only a little force, moral and physical, to obtain these rights, roused the spirit of the nation. Mr Fox discovered very clearly some of the evils of L-ish 5-ff fiSl not be distinct ; and that, therefore, in acting as an Irishman, I may always hope to perform tlie part of a true Englishman also. " I have shown your letter to Grattan, and he ia much gratified by your friendly opinion of liim. We are both of us precisely of the same mind, We respect and honour the present administration. We adore the principle on which it is founded. We look up to its members with the utmost confidence for their assistance in the great work of general free- dom, and should be happy in our turn to have it in our power to support them in Ireland in the manner which may be most beneficial to them, and most honourable to us ; consulted but not considered. The people at large must indeed entertain a partiality for the present ministers. True Whigs must rejoice at the prevalence of Wliiggish principles. The nation wishes to support the favourers of American freedom, the men who opposed the detested, the execrated American war. Let mix riffhts be acknowledged and secured to us — those rights which no man can con- trovert, but which to a tme Whiff are self-evident — and that nation, those lives and fortunes which are now vmiversally pledged for the emancipation of our country, will be as cheerfully, as universally pledged for the defence of our sister kingdom, and for the support of an adminis- tration which will justly claim the gratitude of a spirited and grateful people, by having contributed to the completion of all their wishes. — I am, &c., " Charlemont." AN IRRESPONSIBLE GOVERNMENT. 137 administration. He wrote thus to Mr Fitzpatrick, who was chief secretary, on the 13th April 1782 : — " He [the Duke of Leinster] describes the want of concert and system which comes from the want of such a thing [a cabinet] to be very detrimental in every respect, and particularly in parlia- mentary operations, where those who wish to support Government often do not know till the moment what is the plan proposed, and consequently are wholly unable to support it either system- atically or eflfectually. Another great inconvenience, which he attributes to this want, is that the Lord-Lieutenant, not having any regular ministry to apply to, is driven, or at least led, to con- sult Lees and such sort of inferior people, and by that means the whole power is (as it was here) centered in the Jenkinsons and Eo- binsons, &c., of that country. Nobody is responsible but the Lord- Lieutenant and his secretary ; they know they are to go away, and consequently all the mischiefs ensue that belong to a govern- ment without responsibility. I have not talked with anybody upon this, nor indeed had time to think it over myself, but it really strikes me as a matter very well worth weighing, and I wish the Duke of Portland and you would turn your minds to it, especially if, as I take for granted, this idea was suggested to the Duke of Leinster by other considerable men on your side of the water. I have only stated it to you as it strikes me, upon first hearing the thing broached."^ It was an old story. The Lord-Lieutenant merely looked on his post as a place of emolument or a dignity. Ireland was nothing to him. How should it be, when his residence in that country might terminate at any moment, when he * Corresjjondence of Charles James Fox, vol. i. p. 387. — The editor of that work observes ; " It is curious to see the question of ' responsible government ' started in Ireland more than half a century before it was a watchword in Canada." I* Al ¥i y1 had no power to do good if he wished, and would have even scant thanks from his masters for doing it had he been able? The position was anything but a pleasant one. We shall see later on what another viceroy thought on the subject. At this time there was undoubtedly a system of espionage. Letters were opened, it was said, by the crea- tures of the late administration. Mr Fitzpatrick wrote to Mr Fox to warn him : — " Dublin Castle, April 17th, 1782. " Dear Charles, — I shall begin my letter with giving you a caution concerning the communication of its contents too generally on your side of the water, and with another, respecting the con- fidential letters you write me, which you had better never trust to the post, as we have the misfortune of being here in the hands of the tools of the last Government, and there is every reason to suspect that our letters may be opened before they reach us. I wish you, therefore, to trust them only in the hands of mes- seneers." ^ Vi ,Nl " There are some amusing remarks about Grattan in this letter : " But what appears to me the worst of all is, that unless the heat of the volun- teers subsides, I dread Grattan's. For though everybody seems to agree that he is honest, I am sure he is an enthusiast, and impracticable as the most impracticable of our friends in the Westminster Committee. His situation is enough to turn the head of any man fond of popular applause, but the brUlianoy of it can only subsist by carrying points in opposition to Government ; and though he chose to make a comparison yesterday between Ireland and America, giving the preference to his own country, I confess I think the wise, temperate, systematic conduct of the other, if adopted by Ireland, would bring all these difficulties to a very short and happy conclusion, to the satisfaction and advantage of .^^£^ POST-OFFICE ESPIONAOE. 139 On the 19th of July 1783, Lord Temple wrote a similar complaint to Mr Beresford : — "It is probable that this letter will share the fate which many others have experienced, and as I do not mean to write for the information of the post-office, I will only say that I still take that eager interest in the government of Ireland which will make me cordially rejoice in the success of a wise and temperate govern- ment ; but I have not the smallest objection to the publication of my opinion, that as far as your administration depends upon Enghsh ministers, it will not be wise, temperate, or consistent, and that every scene to which I have been a witness since my arrival in England has confirmed me in my opinions^ under which I resigned the government, which I could not hold with advan- tage to the empire and honour to myself." On the I3tli of October 1783, he wrote :— " The shameful liberties taken with my letters, both sent and received (for even the Speaker's letter to me had been opened ), make me cautious on politics ; but you, who know me, will be- lieve that I am most deeply anxious for the events of this Irish session, and with every disposition to loathe and execrate our English ministry, even with the certainty that their measures, their abilities, and their intentions are little proportioned to the exigencies of the State, I am still too warmly anxious for the peace and unity of the empire not to wish to Government in Ireland every success in the arduous task of this winter." It was no wonder that Ireland was discontented. The both parties. Lord Shelbume's speech gives great satisfaction here, and probably if there had been any chance of soothing this country into moderation, would have done infinite mischief. It is curious enough that while he is recommending us to support the authority of England more than we either can or, I think, ought to do, he should be declaring in the House of Lords that the claims of Ireland must be acceded to." m k ft:] I* m 140 IRISH GRIEVANCES. private correspondence of the times between those who pro- fessed to govern her, afford ample evidence that while they disagreed totally as to how she should be governed, they agreed thoroughly that she should not be allowed a voice in her own government; above all, that she should not be allowed prosperity, commercial or otherwise. Men asked in one breath, "What did Ireland want? and what were her grievances ? " but when she told them, they were flung aside with contempt, or silenced by force. If any man dared to speak for her, and boldly proclaim her wrongs, he was a malcontent; if any man ventured to suggest physical force, he was a rebel. America was quoted to her quite as a model theoretically, but practi- cally we all know the result when she attempted to follow this example. The truth was, England did not choose to listen. What were the most cogent arguments to her, when she had formed her resolve, and did not intend to alter it ? G-rattan told her in plain, clear, unmisrepresentable language what Ireland did not want, and what she did want. She did not want "a foreign judicature;" English rule in Ireland was no better. The Englishmen who ruled Ireland did not consider it their home, much less did they consider it their fatherland, which they should honour, for whose prosperity they should work, heart and soul. The one question with them was, not what will benefit Ii'eland, but what will benefit England. When an act of the commonest "v ll M li-'J JS!' ceeoQc justice was proposed for Ireland, the first observation was not, "We must grant it — it is justice ; but, Will it ever in the least interfere with English interests ? This is no mere assertion. There is ample proof of it. Ireland was told to be " reasonable," which meant that she was to be thankful for such little permission to trade as certainly could not divert a ship-load of any manufac- ture from England, even by the remotest possibility. If concessions were asked, the petition was quietly shelved. If they were demanded, it was considered an insult, and an ample reason for refusing them. If the interests of a great realm were not concerned, if the interests of men who were equals were not con- cerned, one could afford to smile at such folly. It was a schoolboy axiom carried out by great men in politi- cal life. If you will not ask, how can we know what you want? if you do ask, be assured you shall not get what you ask. There was evermore something wrong in that which was asked for, or in the manner of the asking. Practically it mattered little, for the result was just the same.^ ^ Sir Kicliarcl Heron wrote thus to Mr Robinson from Dublin Castle on tbe 20th August 1779 : " The unusual sum of money now wanted, the low state of the revenue, and the general distress of the kingdom, considered together, give great reason to apprehend a very difB.cult ses- sion. It will, however, be my Lord-Lieutenant's utmost endeavour that the aflfairs of this kingdom may embarrass his Majesty and his British servants as little as possible." — Beresford Correspondence, vol. i. p. 47. 142 A PUZZLE PAST COMPREHENSION. Meanwhile the state of the country was becoming daily worse. Ireland was to be allowed only the " gleanings " ^ of commerce, though her worst enemies admitted she could not live on them; she was to be " reasonable," ^ though the same persons declared the kingdom was in such a dis- tress, it "puzzled^ all [English] comprehension" what it might do. ^ " Ireland is certainly a great kingdom ; but the idea of its supporting, upon the gleanings of commerce (for such only it can carry on during a war), its continual drains to Great Britain, and a military establishment sufficient to defend itseK, is certainly ill-founded. Prepare, therefore, to give handsomely, but upon proper terms, some material extension of their conmierce. Whatever commerce this kingdom carries on legally ■will prejudice yours less than their carrying it on, as they have hitherto done, illicitly." — Letter of Sir Richard Heron to Mr Robinson, August 20, 1779. ^ " That no extension (by trade) of any value can be given without the exertion of Government, nor without occasioning great discontent in many parts of England ; and, therefore, unless Ireland is likely to be satisfied with reasonable extensions, they may be assured his Majesty's servants will preserve good-humour at home by not giving their support to any, and that the gentlemen of this country will have the ill humours they excite to pacify, or the kingdom will go into a state of confusion, which cannot but have very serious consequences to all gentlemen who possess property here." — Beresford Correspondence, vol. i. p. 50. * " This kingdom is in such a state as puzzles all comprehension as to what it may do : a multitude of idlers miserably poor ; a debt, small as it is, without a shilling to pay interest ; the skeleton of a force not in his Majesty's service, which it may be difficult to deal, or madness to meddle with ; taxes to be imposed, and no material for imposition ; a great deal of ignorance ; a great deal of prejudice ; a most over- grown hierarchy, and a most oppressed peasantry ; property by some late determinations of the Lords upon covenants for perpetual renewals of leases very much set at sea, and no means to a multitude of families WHAT IRELAND DID NOT WANT. 143 Ireland did not want a " foreign judicature." She wanted an impartial administration, and that could not be given to her by men whose one idea was not justice, but English interests. She did not want a " legis- lative Privy Council," nor a " perpetual army." The "perpetual army" for which she was compelled to pay to supply its place ; rents fallen, and a general disposition to riot and mischief." — Letter from the Attorney-Oeneral to Mr liohinson, dated Har- court Street, Dublin, April 13, 1779. The Attorney-General was created Earl of Clonmel in 1793. He was a clever but utterly unscrupulous politician, and by no means choice in his language. He certainly had little respect for the Protestant Church, of which he was a member. Rowan's " Autobiography " records a strange dialogue between Lord Clonmel and a bookseller named Byrne, whose shop he visited on seeing Eowan's trial advertised. One sentence will convey an idea of the col- loquy, as well as of the times in which such language could be hazarded by a judge. " Take care, sir, what you do ; I give you this caution ; for if there are any reflections on the judges of the land, by the eternal G — I will lay you by the heels." Lord Clonmel's health and spirits gradually broke down, and accounts of his death were daily circulated. On one of these occasions, when he was really very ill, a friend said to Curran, " Well, they say Clonmel is going to die at last. Do you believe it T' "I believe," said Ouirran, " he is scoundrel enough to live or die, just as it suits his own con- venience!" Shortly before the death of Lord Clonmel, Mr Lawless, afterwards Lord Cloncurry, had an interview with him, when the chief exclaimed, " My dear Val, I have been a fortunate man through life ; I am a chief-justice and an earl : but were I to begin the world again, I would rather be a chimney-sweeper, than connected with the Irish Government." His family published his diary for private circulation. It is an amusing and not very edifying production. For fuller accounts of him, see " The Sham Squire, or the Reformers of '98," — a most curious and inter- esting work, giving details never before published of the state of Ireland \t was a necessary consequence of the "foreign judicature."* She asked "nothing but what was essential to her liberty," and she heard this powerful argument enforced by one of the best and ablest of her sons. She only asked what at this eventful period. Lord Clonmel, it is stated, enriched himself by a gross breach of trust, which, however, was then perfectly legal It wo'uld appear that the lady whom he defended was his own step- daughter. The author of " The Sham Squire " was informed by a very respectable solicitor, Mr H , that in looking over Lord Clonmel's rentals, he was struck by the following note written by his lordship's agent, in reference to the property Brolnaduflf. "Lord Clonmel, when Mr Scott, held this in trust for a Roman Catholic, who, owing to the opera- tion of the Popery laws, was incapacitated from keeping it in his own hands. When reminded of the trust, Mr Scott refused to acknowledge it, and thus the property fell into the Clonmel family." The key to this is found in a paragraph in Walker's Hibernian Magazine for July 1797. We read, p. 97,—" Edward Byrne of MuUinahack, Esq., to Miss Eoe, step-daughter to the Earl of Clonmel, and niece to Lord Viscount Llandaff." Hereby hangs a tale. Miss Eoe was understood to have a large fortune, and when Mr Byrne appUed to Lord Clonmel for it, his lordship shuffled, saying, " Miss Koe is a lapsed Papist, and I avail myself of the laws which I administer to withhold the money." Mr Byrne filed a bill, in which he recited the evasive reply of Lord Clon- mel. The chief-justice never answered the bill, and treated Mr Byrne's remonstrances with contempt. These facts transpire in the legal docu- ments held by Mr H . Too often the treachery manifested by the rich in positions of trust, at the calamitous period in question, contrasted curiously with the tried fidelity observed by some needy persons in a similar capacity. Moore, iu his " Memoirs of Captain Rock," mentions the case of a poor Protestant barber, who, though his own property did not exceed a few pounds in value, actually held in fee the estates of most of the Catholic gentry of the county. He adds, that this estimable man was never known to betray his trust." ° See Grattan's Letter, at the end of this chapter. UNCONDITIONAL CONCESSIONS. Englishmen considered indispensable for themselves. The burden of proof lay on them. They were bound to show, if they conld, why they denied Ireland that justice which was the pride and boast of their own country. Mr Fox wrote a politely evasive repl3^ He assured Mr Grrattan that he considered Irish affairs " very import- ant," but that it would be "imprudent" to meddle with them. He wrote the usual platitudes about ardent wishes to satisfy both countries. He probably knew as well, or better, than any living man that he could not satisfy both countries, so long as justice to Ireland was considered injustice to England. Mr Fox wrote a private letter at the same time to Mr Fitzpatrick, in which he said that his answer to Grattan's letter was " perfectly general," ^ which was per- fectly true. The result, however, was favourable. Grattan's appeal was considered and accepted. The Act of the 6th George I., entitled, " An Act for the Better Securing the Dependency of Ireland upon the Crown of Great Britain," was repealed. On the 27th of May 1782, when the Irish Houses met, after an adjournment of three weeks, the Duke of Portland announced the unconditional concessions which had been made to Ireland by the English Parliament. Mr Grattan in- terjjreted the concession in the fullest sense, and moved an ^ Correspondence of Charles James Fox. K m 146 IRISH GRATITUDE. address, " breathing the generous sentiments of his noble and confiding nature." Mr Flood and a few other mem- bers took a different and more cautious view of the case. They wished for something more than a simple repeal of the Act of the 6th George I., and they demanded an express declaration that England would not interfere with Irish affairs. But the address was carried by a division of 211 to 2 ; and the House, to show its gratitude, voted that 20,000 Irish seamen should be raised for the British navy, at a cost of £100,000, and that £50,000 should be given to purchase an estate and build a house for Mr Grattan, whose eloquence had contributed so powerfully to obtain what they hoped would prove justice to Ireland. If even a small majority of the Irish Parliament had been men whose interests were Irish, there is no doubt that Ireland would have prospered. Even as it was, the last years of her nominal independence were her best years. There were three causes which proved the ruin of Irish independence. First, tlie volunteers were quietly and cleverly suppressed.'' There was no noise, no commotion ; 1 How terribly afraid Government was of the vohmteers is evident from the following documents. On the 31st October 1783, General Burgoyne wrote to Mr Fox : — " Add to this the ajaprehensions that timid and melancholy specu- lators entertain upon the meeting of the Convention of Delegates the 10th of next month. I have not myself any idea of serious commotion, but we have strengthened the garrison of Dublin, and it might be thought wrong in the commander-in-cliief to be absent. You have, s L4 DREAD OF THE VOLUNTEERS. it was a simple extinction. Men might talli as they pleased, but without an armed force to give at least a physical impression to their words, the talk was a breath, and nothing more. Secondly, individual members of Par- liament were bribed, sometimes with place, sometimes with doubtless, the fullest information of the proceedings and language of the Bishop of Derry, and of the mode in which the friends of Government mean to meet the question of Parliamentary Reform, if urged other- wise than by application to Parliament."— i^o^s Correspondence, voL ii. p. 189. Lord Worthington wrote from Dublin Castle on November 30, sug- gesting that they should be got rid of politely : — " If this business goes off, as I sanguinely hope it may, and the ad- dress should go to the king, an answer of temper and firmness at the same time would highly suit the present state of things ; such as a retrospective compliment to the conduct of the volunteers, and disap- probation of their present meeting,— a hope, expectation, or advice of their disbanding themselves." On the 17th November, General Burgoyne wrote again :— " A greater embarrassment yet has arisen in the Convention, which you will see in print— viz., the interference (but upon different prin- ciples) of the Catholics. By the mouth of Lord Kenmare, they relin- quish their pretensions to suffrages at elections ; by the mouth of Sir Patrick Bellew, they assert them. I wish they did so more soundly, for I am clearly of opinion that every alarm of the increase of Catholic interest and prevalence beyond the present limits— which give them in the general opinion aU the share of rights necessary for their happiness, and "consistent with the safety of their Protestant feHow-subjects— every idea, I think, of an extension of their claims, excites new jealousy and dread of the volunteers, and cements and animates the real friends of the constitution, and surely with reason ; for, upon the very principle of free and conscientious suffrage, nothing can be more impossible than a Protestant representative chosen by Catholic electors." The last clause is amusing. " Free and conscientious suffrage " would have allowed Catholic electors to elect Catholic representatives. BRIBERY OF THE PRESS. pension, sometimes with rank. It was quite the same in which form the bribe was given or taken, the work was done. And, thirdly, the press was bribed ; and, moreover, this was done more or less opeiilj^ On the 23d of January 1789, Mr Griffith complained in his place in Parliament that the " newspapers seemed under some very improper influence. In one paper the country was described as one scene of riot and confusion ; in another all is peace. By the proclamations that are published in them, and which are kept in for years, in order to make the fortunes of some individuals, the kingdom is scandalised and dis- graced through all the nations of the world where our newspapers are read. The proclamations are a libel on the country. Was any offender ever taken up in con- sequence of such publications ? And are they not rather a hint to offenders to change their situation and appear- ance ? He did hope, from what a right honourable gentleman had said last year, that this abuse would have been redressed, but ministers have not deigned to give any answer on the subject." Proclamations were actually kept up when the country was at peace, so that strangers would suppose that Ireland was a " savage nation ; " — not the last time by any means that it was similarly misrepresented. Newspapers were also distributed gratuitously through the country. On the 27th August 1781, Mr Eden wrote to Lord North, APPEALS FOR SECRET SERVICE MO^^E^. U9 50 ^'? complainiug of the "sickening circumstances" of an Irish secretaryship, and concluded his letter thus : — "My Lord-Lieutenant has repeatedly written to your lord- ship, both through me and through Lord Hillsborough, on the essential importance of obtaining from you some small help of secret service money. We have hitherto, by the force of good words, and with some degree of private expense, preserved an ascendency over the press, not hitherto known here, and it is of an importance equal to ten thousand times its cost ; but we are without the means of continuing it, nor have we any fund to resist the factious attempts among the populace, which may occa- sionally be serious. " Believe me, my dear Lord, ever respectfully and affectionately yours, " Wm. Eden." On the 13 th September, he wrote again on the same subject : — " Our session is drawing desperately near, and all preparations for it are much interrupted by this alarm of an invasion. We much regret that your lordsliip has not found any means to assist us in the article of secret service. The press is the principal operative power in the government of tliis kingdom ; and we are utterly without means to influence that power. We are equally without means to counteract the wicked attempts occasionally made in the idle and populous part of this town to raise mobs, and to turn the rabble against ministers ; having, however, re- peatedly represented these points, ' which nobody can deny,' we have done all that we can do, and must continue to steer through the various difficulties of this government as well as we can, without troops and without money, in the face of an armed people and general poverty." In 1 789, Irish politics were complicated by the regency ¥i >1l question. Mr Pitt opposed, and Mr Fox^ supported the unrestricted regency of the Prince of Wales. The Irish Parliament issued an address " requesting that his Royal Highness would take upon himself the government of Ireland during the continuation of the king's indispo- sition." Grattan headed the independent partj'. Some curious particulars of the fashion in which Ireland was governed came out. The Lord-Lieutenant, Lord Rock- ingham, positively refused to forward the address, and ^ i:y ^ Mr Fox was then at Batli to recruit his health. He had suffered severely from his hurried journey home from Boulogne on hearing of the king's illness. He wrote on Irish affairs to Mr Fitzpatrick on the 17th February 1789, from Bath : — " Dear Dick, — You have heard before this of our triumphant majority in the Plouse of Lords in Ireland, but I think one of the best parts of the news is the address having been put off till yesterday, which seems to remove all apprehension of the difficulty which you mention in your letter, and ^N-hich in effect appears to me to be a very serious one. The delegation cannot leave Dublin till to-morrow ; and as probably it will not be composed of persons who travel like couriers, the Prince will not be able to make an answer till he is actually Eegent here. I think this object so material that our friends ought more than ever to avoid any- thing that tends to delay here. " If the bill is passed there can be no difficulty in the Prince's answer, which must be acceptance, with expression of sensibility to the confidence in him. If, in spite of my calculations, he should be obliged to make his answer before the bill has passed— which, by the way, I hardly think possible— it must be couched in some general terms to which the acts he wiU do in a few days after must give the construction of acceptance. The fact is, our friends have gone too fast in Dublin ; but how could they conceive oiu' extreme slowness here V— Correspond- ence of Charles James Fox, vol. ii. p. 301. Ireland, loyal or disloyal, was sure to be in the wrons;. ■ ^ Parliament was obliged to send delegates. Previous to tlieir departure, the following resolution was carried by 115 to 83 : " That his Excellency's answer to both Houses of Parliament, requesting him to transmit their address to his Eoyal Highness, is ill-advised, contains an unwarrantable and unconstitutional censure on the proceedings of both Houses, and attempts to question the undoubted rights and privileges of the Lords spiritual and temporal, and of the Commons of Ireland." A desperate struggle now commenced between the viceroy and the Parliament. It resolved itself into pa- triotism versus pay. Men who had no personal interest in the country could not be expected to be very patriotic, and pay carried the day. Peerages were sold openly and shamelessly, and the money thus obtained was spent in bribing those to whom money was more necessary, or more gratifying than rank. Mr Fitzgibbon gave it to be understood that half a million of money was placed in his hands for this purpose, and he casually confessed that one address of thanks to Lord Town- send had cost the nation £500,000 a few years before. Grattan, Ourran, and Ponsonby offered to prove this bribery at the time, but they were not allowed. Grattan's voice, however, could not be easily silenced ; and he ob- served at a later period : — " The threat was put into its fullest execution ; the canvass of the minister was everywhere — in the House of Commons, in the lobby, in the street, at the door of the parliamentary undertakers, rapped at and worn by the little caitiflFs of Government, who offered amnesty to some, honours to others, and corruption to all ; and where the word of the viceroy was doubted, they offered their own. Accordingly, we find a number of parliamentary provisions were created, and divers peerages sold, with such effect, that the same Parliament which had voted the chief governor a criminal, did immediately after give that very governor implicit support. "^ " They began," said Curran, "with the sale of the honour of the peerage— the open and avowed sale for money of the peerage to any man who was rich and shameless enough to be the pur- chaser."! In 1790, one linndred and ten placemen sat in the House of Commons; and on the 11th of July, Mr Forbes declared that the pensions had been recently increased upwards of £100,000. It was little wonder that when O'Connell arrived in Dublin in 1797 he found the country on the eve of a rebel- lion, and the so-called Irish Parliament about to extinguish itself under a weight of infamy, none the less contemptible, because it was heavily gilded over by pecuniary greed. Note. "Api-il 18, 1782. " Sir, — I shall make no apology for writing ; in the present posture of things I should rather deem it necessary to make an apology for not writing. Ireland has sent an Address, stating the causes of her discon- tents and jealousies ; thus the question between the two nations be- comes capable of a specific final settlement. We are acquitted of being ^ Life and Times of Grattan, vol. iii, p. 338. ^ Life of Curran, vol. i. p. 240. GRATTAN ON IRISH AFFAIRS. 153 indefinite ia discontents and jealousies ; we liave stated tlie grounds^ of them, and they are those particulars in which the practical constitution of Ireland is diametrically opposite to the principles of British liherty. A foreign legislation, a foreign judicature, a legislative Privy Council, and a perpetual army. It is impossihle for any Irishman to be recon- ciled to any part of such a constitution, and not to hold in the most profound contempt the constitution of England. Thus you cannot re- concile us to your claim of power, without making us dangerous to your liherty ; and you also will, I am confident, allow that in stating such enormities as just causes of discontent and jealousy, we have asked nothing which is not essential to our liberty. Thus we have gained another step in the way to a settlement. We have defined our desires and limited them, and committed ourselves only to what is indispensable to our freedom; and have this further argument, that you have thought it indispensable -to yours. One question then only remains— whether what is necessary for us to have, is safe and honourable to Great Britain 1 "The perpetual Mutiny Law, and the legislative power exercised by the councHs of both kingdoms, it is scarcely necessary to dwell upon, inasmuch as I make no doubt you hold them to be mischievous or use- less to England. The legislative power of the Council can't be material to the connection, though, the necessity of passing hills under the seal of Great Britain may be so. The power of suppressing in the Irish, and of altering in the Enghsh Council, never has been useful to England ; on the contrary, frequently the cause of embarrassment to British government. I have known Privy Councillors agree to bills in ParUa- ment, and in Council alter them materially by some strong clause in- serted to show their zeal to the King, at the expense of the popularity of Government. In England, an Attorney- General, or his clerk, from ignorance, or corruption, or contempt, may, and often has, inserted clauses in Irish biUs which have involved Irish Governments in lasting consequences with the people ; for you must see that a servant of Government in Great Britain, uninformed of the passions of Ireland, may, in the full exercise of legislative power, do irreparable mischief to his king and country, without being responsible to either. " I could mention several instances, but a Mutiny BiU rendered per- petual is a sufficient one, to show how impolitic that law, which com- mits the machine of the constitution and the passions of the human mind to the hand of one man. The negativing our bills is a right K* never disputed ; the poisoning them is a practice we do most ardently deprecate, from sound reason and sad experience. I brought to Parlia- ment a Kst of the alterations made, for the last ten years, in Irish bills by the Privy Council or Attorney-General, and there was not a single alteration made upon a sound legislative motive ; sometimes an altera- tion to vex the Presbyterians, made by the bishops ; sometimes an alteration made by an over zealous courtier, to make Government obnoxious and to render himself at the same time peculiarly acceptable to the king ; sometimes an alteration from ignorance, and not seldom for money. " I shall, therefore, suppose the power of the Council no object to a principled Administration, and no vital question between the two king- doms. We shall have then cleared the way to the great question of supremacy ; for I conceive the legislative and judicative supremacy to be one question. If you retain the legislative power, you must reserve the final determination of law, because you alone will determine the law, in support of your claim ; whereas, if you cede the claim, the question of ju.dicature is one of private property, not national ascend- ency, and becomes as useless to you as it is opprobrious to us. Besides, there are circumstances which render the appellant judicature to you the most precarious thing imaginable. The Lords of Ireland have on their journals a resolution, that they are ready to receive appeals ; so that, after the final settlement with England, if the judicature was not included, any attorney might renew the contest. The decrees of the Lords of England, and of the King's Bench Ukeivise, affecting Ireland, are executed hy the officers of the Courts of Justice of Ireland. The judges of Ireland are now independent. Two of the barons, or judges, may put a total stop to the judicature of the Lords of England, by refusing to lend the process of their Courts ; so that, in order to determine your final judicature, it would be unnecessary to go further than the authority of a few judges, independent of England by their tenure, dependent on Ireland by their residence, and perhaps influenced by conscience and by oath. Besides, the 6th of George I. is enacting as to the appealing, as well as the judicative power. If the former part stands, we are divested of our supreme judicature by an actual exercise of your supreme legis- lative power, and then a partial repeal would be defective upon prin- ciples legislative, as well as jurisdictive. You can't cede your legislative claim, and enjoy your jurisdictive under its authority and exercise j and the whole law must (if the claim of legislature is ceded) fall totally. \l UOOOOL ORATTAN ON IRISH AFFAIRS. The question then hetween the two nations is thus reduced to one point — Will England cede the claim of supremacy ? You seem willing to cede it. Your arguments have led to it. When I say your argmnents, I mean the liberal and enlightened part of England. Both nations, by what they have said — one by what it has admitted, and the other by what it has asserted — have made the claim of England impracticable. The reserve of that claim, of course, becomes unprofitable odium, and the relinquishment is an acquisition of affection without a loss of power. Thus the question between the two nations is brought to a mere punc- tilio — Can England cede with dignity 1 I submit she can ; for if she has consented to enable his Majesty to repeal all the laws respecting America, among which the Declaratory Act is one, she can with more majesty repeal the Declaratory Act against Ireland, who has declared her resolution to stand and fall with the British nation, and has stated her own rights by appealing not to your fears, but your magnanimity. You will please to observe in our Address a veneration for the pride, as well as a love for the liberty of England. You will see in our manner of transmitting the Address, we have not gone to Castle with volunteers as in 1779. It was expedient to resort to such a measure with your jore- decessors in oflloe. In short, sir, you wiU see in our requisition nothing but what is essential to the liberty and composure of our country, and consistent with the dignity and interest of the other. These things granted, your Administration in Ireland will certainly meet with great support : I mean national as well as parliamentary. In consequence of these things, some laws will be necessary — an act to quiet property held under /oTTOer judgments or decrees in England; a Mutiny BiU; a Bill to modify Poyning's Law. Possibly it might be judicious that some of these should be moved by the Secretary here — it would contribute to his popularity. It will be perhaps prudent to adjourn to some further day, until the present Administration have formed. " Before I conclude I wiU take the liberty to guard you against a milgar artifice, which the old Court (by that I mean the Garlisle faction) will incline to adopt. They wUl perhaps write to England false sug- gestions, that Ireland wiU be satisfied with less, and that the Irish Administration are sacrificing to Irish popularity British rights ; and then they will instigate Ireland to stand upon her ultimatum, and thus embarrass Government and betray the people. I know this practice was adopted in Lord Buckingham's Administration by men mortified by his frugality. GRATTAN ON IRISH AFFAIRS. " Might I suggest, if you mean (as I am well inclined to believe, and shall be convinced by the success of our application) a Government by privilege, that it would be very beneficial to the character of your government in Ireland, to dismiss from their official connexions with Government some notorious consciences, to give a visible, as well as real integrity to his Majesty's Councils in Ireland, and to relieve them from a certain treachery in men, who will obey you and betray you. " It would be prudent to exhibit to the public eye a visible constitu- tional Administration. The people here have a personal antipathy to some men here who were the agents of former corruption, and would feel a vindictive delight in the justice of discarding them. When I say this, I speak of a measure not necessary absolutely, if the requisitions are complied with, but very proper and very necessary to elevate the character of your government, and to protect from treachery your con- sultations ; and when I say this, it is without any view to myself who under the constitutional terms set forth, am willing to take any part in the Administration, provided it is not emolumentary. Your minister here wiU find very great opportunities for vigorous retrenchment, such as will not hazard him in the House of Commons, and may create an enthusiasm in his favour without doors. " I am running into immoderate length, and beg to conclude with assurances of great constitutional hopes, and personal admiration, and am, with great respect, " Your most humble and obedient servant, "H. Grattan. )^v \4 CIjEpkr f\mxi\, CA USES OF THE IRISH REBELLION. 1790-1800. THE NOETHBRN WHIQ CLUB THE UNITED IKISHMEN CLUB — CATHOLIO ADDRESS TO THE KINO — POLITICAL COMMOTIONS — TREACHERY OP PITT — LORD EITZ- WILLIAM, THE CATHOLIC QUESTION, AND THE BERESFORDS MATNOOTH ESTABLISHED — THE ORANGE SOCIETT — CATHOLIC CLERGY — OVERZEAL OE O'CONNELL — ARRESTS — LIST OP SUSPECTED PERSONS — LORD CORNWALUS' ADMINISTRATION — THE CROMWELL POLICY— STATE OP THE PEASANTRY — TESTIMONY OP MART LEADBETTER. ^ q h Kit 160 THE EATINa AND DRINKING CLUB. There was a gleam of intelligence in the implied possi- bility that it might not he right, under some certain cir- cumstances, to persecute a man for following the dictates of his conscience ; there was an alloy of prejudice in the suggestion that Catholics, who were alluded to, would, or did attempt to subvert the State. Possibly, however, and we think probably, it was a sop to the Cerberus of Protestant ascendency, a declaration that, though they were liberal, they would, under certain circumstances, be willing to act illiberally. It was something certainly to the credit of humanity that a time had arrived when Catholics were not avowedly persecuted without the ready excuse of disloyalty. A banquet followed, and the toast of " the glorious and immortal memory " was duly honoured, though probably nine-tenths of those who quaffed the libation to the shades of the departed hero, would have been sorely puzzled to tell why he was styled " glorious," and, having serious doubts as to the immortality of the human race, would hardly have believed in his. Lord Clare termed it an " eating and drinking club," and no doubt it was. There was certainly a good deal of drinking. On the 14th July 1791, the anniversary of the French Eevolution was celebrated by the Protestant patriots, and they drank to the memory of "Thomas Paine," and "the rights of man," to "the glorious memory," and to " the majesty of the people." Notwith- DIED OF RESPEGTABILITT. 161 standing all this drinking, or perhaps because of it, the club died out. But the principles which animated the club did not die out. It died of respectability. When some of the men who had helped to inaugurate it found that the club meant something more than talking and drinking, they gradually withdrew. Lord Charlemont had been a member, and Lord de Clifford, and the Earl of Moira, and the Hon. Robert Stewart, afterwards Lord Castlereagh. But the men who really instituted it were there still. Henry Joy, M'Cracken, Eussell, and, above all, Samuel Neilson, set themselves to form another club, a political club. Mr Neilson went further than his friends ; he suggested that Catholics should be permitted to join it. Perhaps he saw that such a movement as he contem- plated could not be effected without the co-operation of his Catholic fellow-subjects.' It was very well to talk of 2 The following extracts from the " Lives and Times of the United Irishmen," second series, vol. i. p. 79, will show how the blameless and exemplary life of a poor Catholic servant was the means of removing pre- judice. After aU, personal knowledge of Catholics in private life seldom failed to do so. " NeUson on this occasion said, ' Our efforts for reform hitherto have heen ineffectual, and they deserved to be so, for they have been selfish and unjust, as not including the rights of the CathoUcs in the claims we put forward for ourselves.' The evening of that day, when the subject was first mooted, M'Cracken, on his return home, naentioned the circum- stance to a member of his family, who, in reference to the proposed club, expressed some doubts of Roman Catholics being sufRciently enlightened to co-operate with them, or to be trusted by their party. M'Cracken, Xj seemed the only hope of obtaining liberty to worship God as their conscience bade them. The plan was prepared by Theobald Wolfe Tone, a Protestant. The Catholics were to meet openly, and proceed openly. Five gentlemen were chosen to bear their address to the king. These gentlemen were Sir Thomas French, Mr Byrne, Mr Keogh, Mr Deve- reaux, and Mr Bellew. They went through Belfast on their way to London. It was not their direct road cer- tainly, but the Protestant leaders of the United Irishmen received them in triumph, and the northern Presbyterians showed their advancement in political enlightenment by removing the horses from their carriage, and dragging them in triumph through the town. The delegates had chosen an opportune moment for their visit to royalty. There were fears both within and without; war imminent in Europe ; and in England there were ter- rible apprehensions of domestic riot. Several associations had been formed in England demanding Parliamentary reform, or seeking to obtain it ; hence it was necessary that war in Ireland should be averted, even at the cost of a few concessions.* * On the IStli Decemlier 1792, at the opening of the session, the king addressed Parliament thus, on the state of England : — "The seditions practices -which had been in a great measnre checked by your firm and explicit declaration in the last session, and by the general conciiirence of my people in the same sentiments, have of late been more openly renewed, and with increased activity. A spirit of tumult and disorder (the natural consequence of such practices) has shown itself in acts of SOMETHING MUST BE DONE. 165 Several acts were passed to avert tlie danger, but Irish- men had begun to know their power, the power of united Irishmen ; and when the Portland ministry was formed in 1794, it was found that something more substantial was necessary. Lord Fitzwilliam was appointed Lord-Lieu- tenant, and for the first time Grattan was taken into the councils of the so-called Irish Government. On the 12th riot and insurrection, wHch. required the interposition of a military force in support of the civil magistrate. The industry employed to excite dis- content on various pretexts, and in different parts of the kingdom, has appeared to proceed from a design to attempt the destruction of our happy constitution, and the subversion of all order and government ; and this design has evidently been pursued in connection and concert with persons in foreign countries." Lord John Eussell observes, in his " Correspondence of Fox," vol. iii. p. 33 : " England, Prussia, and Austria, with lofty pretensions of fight- ing for the cause of religion and order, had each separate and selfish objects, while the French, united and enthusiastic, fought for a mock liberty, but a real independence. With the Allies it was a war some- times of principles ; sometimes of provinces ; sometimes to restore a monarchy, sometimes to acquire Martinique. With the French the most horrible tyranny, the most systematic murder and plunder at home, were accompanied by the most brilliant courage, the most scientific plans of campaign, and the most entire devotion to the glory of their country." Mr Fox wrote thus to Lord Holland, June 14, 1793 : " I believe the love of political liberty is not an error ; but, if it is one, I am sure I never shall be converted from it— and I hope you never will. If it be an illusion, it is one that has brought forth more of the best qualities and exertions of the human mind than all other causes put together ; and it serves to give an interest in the affairs of the world which, without it, would be insipid ; but it is unnecessary to preach to you upon this sub- ject. It was only when political Uberty was asked for in Ireland that it ceased to meet with the admiration of English statesmen." m Vn '/J I i-'J 166 THE NATION DUPED AGAIN. of July, lie obtained leave to bring in a bill for the relief of Catholics, three members only dissenting. But once more the nation was duped ; Lord Fitzwilliam was recalled on the 24th of March. Whether the English Government really intended to do anything for Ireland or not, can never now be known. If they intended justice, it was a pity the intention should not have been carried out ; if they played a deceitful game, they might have learned by the result that honesty, even in political matters, is the best, because it is the wisest policy. Lord Fitzwilliam indeed declared that he would never have undertaken the govern- ment, if Catholic Emancipation had not been included in the ministerial programme. Possibly Mr Pitt expected to find him a more pliant tool, and recalled him when he found the metal not malleable.* 6 " There were some members of the Irish Parliament certainly not disposed to favour the Catholic claims, who saw the folly of this kind of government. Sir Lawrence Parsons said : ' That the' grant of supplies and the redress of grievances should go hand in hand. The only security the country had was a short Money BiU ; it had been tried in 1779 ; it had been tried in 1789 ; and, in both instances, had been of utility. The people had been led to expect great measures ; their hopes had been raised, and now were about to be blasted. If the Cabinet of Great Britain had held out an assent to the Catholic question, and had afterwards retracted, it was an insult to the nation which the House should resent. There had been no meetings ; no petitions of the Protestants against the claims of the Catholics. It would thence be inferred that their senti- ments were not adverse to the emancipation ; this was held out as the leading measure of administration ; the Responsibility Bill was an- other ; the Reform Bill ■ft'as another. In consideration of these measures additional taxes had been voted to the amount of £250,000 ; but now it But the English Government were perfectly well aware of the certain result of this treachery. It has been said again and again, that Mr Pitt wished to drive the Irish into rebellion in order to effect the Union. Whether he deliberately took measures to that effect or not, cannot now be discovered, but his public acts sufficiently show that if he had not that intention, he was at least fully aware that what he did, and what he omitted to do, would alike lead to that result. His conduct was mean and dastardly ; no noble-minded man would have deceived a helpless and confident people as he deceived the Irish nation. " It was not until the Irish Parliament had submitted to heavy burdens, not only by providing for the security of the kingdom by great military establishments, but like- wise by assisting the empire at large in the moment of its greatest distress, by aids great and unparalleled beyond all example ; it was not till Lord Fitzwilliam's popularity had induced the House of Commons, on the faith of popular appeared that the country had been duped— that nothing was to be done for the people. If the British minister persisted in such infatuation, discontent would be at its height, the array must be increased, and every man must have dragoons in his house.' The motion was rejected by 146 to 24. Mr ConoUy then proposed three resolutions : — ' That Lord Fitzwilliam by his public conduct since his arrival in Ireland de- served the thanks of the House, and the confidence of the people.' Never in the history of any nation can there be found such duplicity, such treachery, and such meanness as was practised towards the people of Ireland." — Life of Orattan, vol. iv. p. 188. '•Ml wm w ml THE CATHOLIG QUESTION. questions, to grant the largest supjDly ever demanded, and a larger army than had ever before been voted in Ireland ; it was not till he had laid a foundation for increasing the established force of the country, and procured a vote of £200,000 for the general defence of the empire, and 20,000 men for the navy, and a supply to the amount of £1,800,000, that the British Cabinet proceeded to notice and reply to Lord Fitzwilliam's letters. Then, for the first time, the dismissal of Mr Cooke and Mr Beresford was complained of, and made a charge against Lord Fitzwilliam ; then, and not till then, commenced the accusations against him as to the Catholic question, and his imputed design to overturn the constitution in Church and State. But a re- ference to the proceedings on this subject will show the futility of this charge, and that it was a mere pretext. Let it be recollected that this question, though opposed in 1793 by Lord "Westmoreland and his friends, had been sup- ported by Mr Hobart (the L'ish Secretary), and the British Cabinet ; that Mr Pitt and Mr Dundas (Lord Melville), had given it their support ; that they had communicated their intentions to the Catholic agents in London, and their expressions (well remembered and often quoted) were, that "they would not risk a rebellion in L'eland on such a question; " yet the very man who had actually agreed to it, in conference with Mr Grattan and Lord Fitzwilliam, and to the former of whom he had used these very remark- able words, " I have taken office, and I have done so be- cause I knew there was to be an entire change of system,' —this Duke of Portland, in his letter to Lord Fitzwilliam, says that " to defer the Catholic question was not only a thing to be desired for the present, but the means of doing a greater service to the British empire than it has been capable of receiving since the Eevolution, or at least since the Union." On the receipt of this letter. Lord Fitzwilliam immedi- ately acted with a spirit and resolution worthy of him. He wrote to Mr Pitt, defended the dismissal of Mr Beresford, as necessary to the efficacy of his government, and left the minister to choose between him and Mr Beresford. He wrote the same night to the Duke of Portland, stating his surprise at their resisting a question that had been long since agreed upon, and this at the expiration of such an interval of time— namely, from the 8th of January, when he first wrote about the Catholic question, to the 8th of February, when it was first objected to by the English ministers. He stated the danger of hesitation or resistance, and he refused to be the person to raise a flame in the country, that nothing short of arms could keep down ; and left him to determine whether, if he was not to be supported, he oug-ht not to be removed.^ 6 Life of Oramn, vol. iv. p. 193.- The Beresfords knew their power well They knew also, though they raised a " No Popery " cry, that the leaders and first movers of the United Irishmen, whom they styled .^L Z^. 170 MR FORBES' LETTER. ,N1 On the 25th of February 1795, Mr Forbes wrote to Mr Sergeant Adair. He concluded his letter thus : " It is reported that Pitt intends to overturn the Irish Cabinet by rejecting Catholic claims. Should he pursue that line, England will be involved in inextricable confusion, and it will end in the total alienation of Ireland." Burke wrote to Mr Grattan, expressing his indignation at the way in which he had been treated. In the English Parliament, there was a scene of mutual recrimination con- cerning the recall of Lord Fitzwilliam, but no one con- cerned himself much about the effect that this would have in Ireland. The truth was that the Beresfords had determined from the first to get rid of the Lord-Lieutenant, and they sue- \r "devils," were Protestants. It mattered little to them how Ireland suffered so they held place and pension. On the 4th Sept. 1796, Mr Beresford wrote to his friend Lord Auckland ; — " The United Irishmen of the north, alias the Dissenters and the Defenders, and the Papists would join them ; these two classes are hound hy oatha, &c., whilst the moh and common people, not sworn, would take advantage, and plunder everyhody, and commit murders and such extravagances as are always the consequences of letting loose the rahhle. The utmost pains have heen taken hy these devils, the United Irishmen, to prepare the minds of the different classes of the people for mischief. The public prints are of the most seditious and inflammatory species. They have a vast number of emissaries constantly going through the country, to seduce every person they can, and swear them ; they have songs and prophecies, just written, stating all late events and what is to happen, as if made several years ago, in order to persuade the people that, as a great part of them has already come to pass, so the remainder will certainly happen." fi COLLEGE OF MAYNOOTE. ceededJ Lord Fitzwilliam was perfectly aware of the cause of his dismissal, but he seems to have felt the decep- tion whicli had been practised on the Irish nation far more than the injury done to himself. Lord Camden succeeded, and as the Government had some apprehensions lest the Catholics should avenge them- selves in any way for the duplicity with which they had been treated, it was proposed to establish the College of Maynooth. The excuse to those who objected to granting even the least favour to Catholics, had the advantage of being a plausible one. It was evident that no amount of penal laws would prevent Catholics from becoming priests ; it was evident, it was indeed a matter of fact, that if they were not allowed to be educated in Ireland, they would be educated abroad. It was said that being educated abroad tended to render them disloyal ; and certainly to deny a man education in his own country, and oblige him to endure the labour and expense of expatriation in order to obtain it, was 7 Lord Aiickland worked up tlie Beresford interest in London quietly, and with the steady determination which generally insures success. The Beresfords held their power solely on a " No Popery " cry. Any liberality — or, to speak more correctly, justice to Catholics — was fatal to their continuance in power, because they had made their political success depend on their religious bigotry. Mr Beresford, of course, denied his great political power, but even in the letter which he wrote himself to Lord Auckland, who acted as his ambassador in the affair, he wrote so strongly of his "power of embarrassing Government," that Lord Auckland thought it best to keep back that part of his letter even from his patron, Mr Pitt. — Beresford Correspondence, vol. ii. pp. 56-84. ^O' not naturally the best method of inducing affection for the power which compelled this course. It was, moreover, believed that if Grovernment endowed Maynooth the Irish hierarchy would feel bound in return to support Govern- ment. It was at least certain to all but the most obtuse, that a rebellion was imminent in Ireland, and this seemed a probable means of enlisting the Catholic clergy on the side of England. The times were becoming daily more and more troubled, principally because the condition of the people was becoming daily worse. When men are starving, when they know that their starvation is caused by injustice, they are seldom slow to redress their wrongs. How patiently the Irish can suffer when famine comes to them as a direct visitation from God, has been proved in later years. It is probable the poor Irish Catholics of the south would have suffered as patiently if they had not been roused to resistance by the stern Presbyterians of the north, and if the newly-formed Orange Society had not been allowed to attack them with impunity. The state of Ireland at this period was certainly fearful, and an eternal disgrace to those by whom it was governed. A Protestant writer says : — " The Government thought, at least, to retain the Church of England faction by uniting the interest of the ' Peep-of-Day Boys ' with that of the Church of England gentry, from which curious union sprung, in 1796, the Orange Society, sworn to maintain the Protestant ascendency of 1688. But the Orangemen were as W t t^( m 4 'M OUANGE OUTRAGES. 173 lawless as the Defenders. Lord G-osford, who had been appointed joint lord-lieutenant of the county of Armagh with the Earl of Charlemont, in 1791, to counterpoise the Whiggism of the latter, found it necessary in December 1795, to convene a meeting of the magistrates of that county, and call on them to put a stop to the barbarous practices of the Orange Society. It sufficed for a man to profess the Eoman Catholic religion to have his dwelling burnt over his head, and himself, with his family, banished out of the county. Nearly half the inhabitants of the county of Armagh had been thus expatriated. To check these outbreaks of Defenders and Orangemen, Parliament, early in 1796, passed an Insurrection Act. Persons administering unlawful oaths were to suffer death, and those who took them transportation. But in the terrible times which ensued, this evil was allowed to work only one way. The Orangemen, and other Protestant insurrectionists, were allowed to bear arms, and to use them as they pleased. The penalties all fell upon the unhappy Catholics, and on such Pro- testants as had joined the United Irishmen, a numerous and powerful body." The Mgh sheriff of Galway, Charles Blake, addressed Grattan on the alarmiDg state of affairs, in the name and by the desire of the gentlemen and freeholders of the county. They declared it "highly honourable" to him, though not to the age, that his dismissal from office was considered " a necessary and previous stage to the return of some that are not reported to love the people." The letter was short, manly, intelligent, and worthy of the men of Galway. The students of Dublin University addressed him, and, with a liberality quite beyond the age, declared most truly " that the harmony and strength of Ireland will be ^ I'^i TEE CATHOLIC CLERGY. founded on the solid basis of Catholic Emancipation, and the reform of those grievances which have inflamed public indignation."^ Even at that moment, if the least effort had been made in the direction of justice to Catholics, and if even a trifling instalment of the justice which has since been done to them had been attempted, the rebellion of 1 798 might never have been, and a legacy of hatred to England might have been averted. The Catholic clergy were wholly on the side of order ; but what could they do with a starving people ? England had destroyed Irish trade ; they could not excuse this ; they could not say it is your own fault, that you are starving, bear it as a calamity which you have brought on yourselves. England still persecuted their religion, and what was worse, permitted, if she did not actually encourage, Irish Protestants to massacre their fellow-subjects because they were Irish Catholics. Could this be defended ? Yet they did what they could ; they practised patience, they practised submission, they preached practical Christianity ; and if their lessons had no effect, it was not because Irish Catho- lics were less faithful to the teaching of their holy faith than they had been in former ages, but because they believed that their cause was a just one.* 8 Life of Qrattan, by his Son, vol. iv. pp. 222, 223. ° On the 10th March 1798, Dr Lanigan, the Catholic Bishop of Ossory, wrote thus to Dr Troy, the Catholic Archbishop of Dublin ;— Negotiations were opened with the French Grovernment by the United Irishmen in 1796. Lord Edward Fitzgerald, Arthur O'Connor, a gentleman of property in the county of Cork, and Theobald Wolfe Tone, a barrister, were the persons selected for this undertaking. O'Connell's son, in writing his father's Memoir, was naturally anxious to screen his father from the discredit " Balltkasget, March 10, 1798. " Most Eev. Sir, — I was absent from Kilkenny these eight days, and was a great part of that time ooctipied with the priests that border on the Queen's County, in consulting them, and concerting measures with them in order to prevent, if possible, the introduction of United Irishmen and their principles into this county. The letter you honoured me with was sent after me, and I received it there. I could make this short but true answer to it, that the charges mentioned there against the priests and me are false, malicious, and groundless. It is necessary, perhaps, to prove this more at large. I beg your patience, then, while I state the facts as they happened. " A sermon was preached in St James's chapel, about a month ago, on faith, its necessity, its utility, and the conditions required for true faith. The preacher had in view only to confute the lax principles of the richer Eoman Catholics, who, under pretext of liberality of senti- ment, wished to establish an indifference about all religion and all reli- gious modes of worship." — Ilemoirs of Viscount Castlereagh, vol. i. p. 161. The upper classes of Catholics were sorely tempted to apostatise. The cause of this temptation has been already fully explained. The consequence was that they kept very much aloof from their former Catholic brethren. Mr Grattan says, in his " Life of his Father," vol. iv. p. 50 I " In late as well as in early times the Irish aristocracy have attached themselves too much to party in England, and have forgotten the real interests of their own nation. The wise policy would have been to have attended exclusively to their own country — a course more politic, though less profitable." The treatment which the upper classes had received during the Irish revolution tended to strengthen this feeling stm greater. 176 0' CON NELL A UNITED IRISHMAN. of being a United Irishman. That he was there is not the slightest doubt, for he has left the fact on record himself. His naturally enthusiastic temperament led him to throw himself eagerly into any scheme likely to benefit his country. He joined the artillery corps on his arrival in Dublin ; and the division to which he belonged, known as the " Lawyers' Artillery," was said to have been the best got up, and the best equipped in Dublin.^ He also joined a debating society which met in Eustace Street, where the stirring events of the times were freely canvassed. Here, he says : — " I had many good opportunities of acquiring valuable informa- tion, upon which I very soon formed my own judgment. It was a terrible time. The political leaders of the period could not con- ceive such a thing as a perfectly open and above-board political machinery. My friend, Richard Newton Bennett, was an adjunct to the Directory of United Irishmen. I was myself a United Irishman. As I saw how matters worked, I soon learned to have no secrets in politics."^ O'Connell lodged in Trinity Place. A gentleman who ' The uniform of the lawyers' corps was scarlet and blue, their motto, Pro aris et focis ; the. attorneys' regiment of Volunteers was scarlet and Pomona green ; a corps called the Irish Brigade, and composed princi- pally of Catholics (after the increasing liberality of the day had per- mitted them to become Volunteers) wore scarlet and white ; other regi- ments of Irish brigades wore scarlet faced with green, and their motto was Vox populi siiprema lex est ; the goldsmiths' corps, commanded by the Duke of Leinster, wore blue, faced with scarlet and a professional profusion of gold lace. ^ Personal EecoUections, by O'Neill Daunt. knew Dublin well at that period describes it as " an almost unexplored nook." He was very intimate with Mr Murray, a respectable grocer, who resided at No. 3 South Great George Street, and who, like most Irishmen of the period, was in heart a rebel. That O'Connell was then in favour of physical force there can be no doubt, however he may have wished in later years to throw a veil of oblivion over his boyish ardour. A rising was expected literally every night, and Major Sirr was patrolling Dublin eager to exer- cise his bloody mission on the suspected. On one memorable evening O'Connell, excited partly by drink and partly by patriotism, and always ready to be first in the fray, was eager to join a meeting of United Irishmen that very night, and to swear in new members, but his host, more prudent, though by no means less patriotic,® induced the enthusiastic j'outh to accompany him to 2 Mr Murray's son, who must have been thoroughly well-informed on the subject, has left the following account of the affair on record, which I quote from the " Sham Squire," with the author's permission : — " We are indebted to the late Mr Peter Murray, of the Eegistry of Deeds Offloe, Dublin, a man of scrupulous veracity, for the foUovring curious reminiscence of O'Connell in 1798 : — ' My father, a respectable cheese- monger and grocer, residing at 3 South Great George Street, was ex- ceedingly intimate with O'Connell, when a law student, and during his earlier career at the bar. Mr O'Connell, at the period of w^hich I speak, lodged in Trinity Place adjacent, an almost unexplored nook, and to many of our citizens a terra incognita. I well remember O'Connell, one night at my father's house during the spring of 1798, so carried away by the political excitement of the day, and by the ardour of his innate patriotism, calling for a prayer-book to swear in some zealous M the canal bridge at Leeson Street, where he saw him safely on board a turf boat, and out of harm's way. It was well that this had been accomplished, for Mr Murray's house was searched that night by Major Sirr. In one of O'Connell's communications to Mr O'Neill Daunt, he mentions leaving Dublin in June 1798 in a boat, and having paid the pilot half a guinea to put him on shore at Ccrrk. Indeed, it was impossible at that time to travel in any other way. Bands of armed men were marching in every direction through the country, and as neither party was very particular as to identity, the most peaceful tra- veller was not free from danger. It would appear probable young men as United Irishmen at a meeting of the body in a neigh- bouring street. Counsellor was there, and offered to accompany O'Connell on his perilous mission. My father, although an Irishman of advanced liberal views and strong patriotism, was not a United Irish- man, and endeavotired, but without effect, to deter his young and gifted friend from the rash course in which he seemed embarked. Dublin was in an extremely disturbed state, and the outburst of a bloody in- surrection seemed hourly imminent. My father resolved to exert to the uttermost the influence which it was well known he possessed over his young friend. He made him accompany him to the canal bridge at Leeson Street, and after an earnest conversation, succeeded in persuad- ing the future Liberator to step into a turf boat which was then leaving Dublin. That night my father's house was searched by Major Sirr, accompanied by the attorneys' corps of yeomanry, who pillaged it to their hearts' content. There can be no doubt that private information of O'Connell's tendencies and haunts had been communi- cated to the government.' " — The Sham Squire ; or, The Rebellion in Ire- land, page 305. Dublin : Kelly. Mr John O'Connell gives an account of the affair which was evi- dently " revised." He says : — " On one occasion, however (perhaps the hi 4 that O'Connell remained in the peaceful wilds of Kerry during the most eventful period of the Rebellion. It was at that time that he contracted the fever previously men- tioned. But even then news travelled to that remote locality, and the terrible Revolution of '98 was read, not as we read it now, as a tale of horrors long past, but as a terrible tragedy then being enacted hour by hour, and of which the end was not known yet. only one of his life); at the table of Mr Murray, already mentioned, about the month of March of the year 1798, he was betrayed, by the heat of a political discussion, into some forgetfulness of his constant habit of tem- perance ; and took what to him was inconvenient, although to the weU- soaked brains of most of his compeers it would have been of no conse- quence. Returning that night full of self-reproach and annoyance at the unaccustomed sensations he had subjected himseK to, his interposi- tion to save a wretched female from the blows of some cowardly ruffians, in the garb of gentlemen, drew upon him the attack of the whole party ; but for a while (owing to his great strength and activity) with signal dis- comfiture to themselves, three being knocked down by him in succes- sion. However, one of the latter, on getting up, came behind and pinioned him, and so he was overpowered — receiving, while in this de- fenceless position, and ere he could free himself, several blows on the face, by which it was so disfigured as to render a few days' confinement to the house advisable. While under this irksome restraint, his land- lord, a most respectable tradesman (well known long afterwards to the theatre-going folk as Regan the fruiterer), then purveyor to the Castle of Dublin, took the liberty of his years, and permitted but respectful familiarity, to warn his young lodger from committing himself politically — detailing the dark hints rife in the purlieus of the Castle, of the deep and fearful game the government were playing in allomng the insur- rection to mature, while they kept themselves ready, and had it in their power to lay hands upon its leaders at any moment." — Memoirs of . O'Connell, by his Son, vol. i. p. 15. \,i m i LORD EDWARD FITZGERALD. Grattan withdrew from politics, hopelesa of inducing the Government to do justice, or the people to bear injustice. The United Irishmen only numbered two men of rank amongst their leaders. Lord Edward Fitzgerald and Arthur O'Connor. Lord Edward belonged to the noble house of Leinster, and had learned to desire liberty, not for a class, but for all, first in America,* where he had served under Lord Cornwallis, and then in France, where he had attended * Lord Ed-ward Fitzgerald's letters to his mother from America show the singular tenderness of his nature, and his delicate thoughtfulness for others, and especially for his good mother. He wrote, " She has a rope about my neck that gives hard tugs at it, and it is all I can do not to give way." How terrible was the last " giving way " of that fond heart, can only be realised by natures as sensitive as his. Writing about some business, he says — " I believe there is un Men clique of fellows in that country. Pray do not let any of them into Kilrush, for they will only distress and domineer over the poor tenants." — Memoirs oj Lord Edward Fitzgerald, vol. i. p. 124. Lord Edward was treated most cruelly after his capture, notwithstanding his high rank. It is said that Lord Clare urged him to escape, and said every port in the country would be left open to him, but his nature was far too chivalrous to seek his own safety while others were in danger. The late Lord Holland furnishes, in his " Memoirs," many interesting illustrations of Lord Edward's sweet and gentle disposition : — " With the most unaffected simplicity and good nature he would palliate, from the force of circumstances or the accident of situation, the perpetrators of the very enormities which had raised his high spirit and compassionate nature to conspire and resist. It was this kindness of heart that led him, on Ms deathbed, to acquit the officer who inflicted his wounds of all malice, and even to commend him for an honest discharge of his duty. It was this sweetness of disposition that enabled him to dismiss with good humour one of his bitterest persecutors, who had visited him in his mangled condition, if not to insult his misfortunes, with the idle hope of extorting his secret. ' I would shake hands willingly with you,' ARREST OF FIFTEEN LEADERS. 181 a political dinner, at which he accepted the title of " citi- zen." O'Connor was nephew and heir to Lord Longueville, by whom he was brought into Parliament in 1790. Fifteen leaders of the United Irishmen were seized in Belfast on the 14th of April 1797. They were all Protes- tants, and of the number there were seven Presbyterian ministers, and three Covenanters. Their papers were exa- mined, and afforded an excuse for fresh cruelties. In the very face of the fact, that these men, who were the real originators of the revolt, were Protestants, the fiercest punishments were inflicted on the Catholics. When Lord Cornwallis arrived in Ireland, he found his difficulty was not so much to repress the rebellion as to quiet those who were exciting and increasing it by their blood-thirsty rage. Every one who had a grudge against a neighbour denounced him as a rebel. Every one who wanted to gain favour with government sent in a list of suspected persons. This was often done secretly; no name was given, and yet government, or those who were acting in the name of government, proceeded at once to hang, shoot, or torture the unhappy victims.® said he, ' but mine are cut to pieces. However, I 'U shake a toe, and wish you good-bye.' " His family felt his treatment bitterly. His brother. Lord Henry Fitzgerald, wrote to Lord Camden reproaching him with his cruelty ; but it was useless, cruelty was the order of the day.— See Memoirs of Grattan, vol. iv. p. 387. ' Mr Dundas forwarded one of these lists from a man " who would zjoaaa LIST OF THOSE SUSPECTED. The excesses committed by the army were so hori we cannot defile these pages with them. On the 31st of not come forward," to Sir Ralph Aberorombie. The list is a curiosity, and shows how such matters were arranged. Rett] EN of Suspected Pbrsoks. Residence. Characters of the Men. Kildare . . Treasurer to the County meeting. ( Representative to Surgeon Cum- Namcs. Stephen Garrj-- Waller Mooney Michael Lee . James Kelly . Patrick Burne Hugh Toole . Patrick Conlau John Conlan . Dominick Conlan Maurice Conlan Matthew Conlan — Conlan, his son Thomas Gannon Michael Barnes Edward Burne Christopher Flood — Deering . . Edmund Bell Thomas Kelly Patrick Doyle — Flood. . . — Daly, son to ward Daly . Lawrance Byrne . Friarstown . Kildare , . . Do. . . . . Ballysax . . Conlanstown . Do. . . . . Do. . Brownstown. . Do. . Ballysax. . Do. . Bally fair . . .Do. ... • . Landcroft. . Cut Bush. . Maddenstown ( Hond Home . } on the Cur- ( ragh . . . ( mmgs. Deeply engaged, and a Captain. ( A Committee-man, and knows j much. ( A Captain, much with Lord Ed- ( Fitzgerald. Treasurer Kildare Meeting. A supposed assassin. Deep in the secret. Used to be much with Lord Edward Fitzgerald. His son a Captain, and now in jail. Has a meeting every Sunday at his home at 10 o'clock. Postmaster of \ ^ captain, and swears in many. KilcuUen . ' '^ ' ( A Captain, and deeply con- ■ ( cerned. I A Captain of the half-barony of ■ ( KilcuUen. ( A blacksmith, and suf ■ ( have made most of Do. Do. I Do. . . , Ballysax V. EXCESSES OF TEE IflLITARY. 183 August 1798, Lord Cornwallis issued general orders in the vain hope of improving their conduct; he might as well have tried to control the west wind. *' Ballinamore, August Slst, 1798. "It is with very great concern that Lord Cornwalhs finds him- self obhged to call on the General Officers and the Commanding Officers of regiments in particular, and in general on the officers of the army, to assist him in putting a stop to the licentious conduct of the troops, and in saving the wretched inhabitants It will be seen that whole families were marked out for slaughter — that ia many cases no reason whatever is given for the accusatioti, and that in many more the unhappy men were only "supposed" to be guilty. Mr Dundas concludes this letter by saying : — " Everything goes on quietly, but we have been obliged to destroy a large quantity of whisky, without which the troops would have got drunk, and done much mischief." The yeomen and military were drunk half their time, and those wretches were the men to whom full liberty was granted to kill and torture any one on mere suspicion, or even without that excuse. Sir Ealph Abercrombie was too gallant an offtcer to encourage, or if he could help it, to practise such atrocities, but no one had control over the army, which he declared " was formidable to every one but the enemy." Lord Castlereagh wrote to General Lake, who succeeded Sir Ralph on the same subject. " Dublin Castle, April 25th, 1798. '■■ Sir, — It having been represented to his ExoeUenoy the Lord-Lieu- tenant, that much evil may arise to the discipline of the troops from their being permitted for any length of time to live at free qiiarters, that the loyal and well-aflfected have in many instances suffered in common with the disaffected, from a measure which does not admit in its execution of sufficient discrimination of persons, I am directed by his Excellency to request that you will advert to these inconveniences, and adopt such other vigorous and effectual measures for enforcing the speedy surrender of arms as in your discretion you shall think fit, and which shall appear to you not liable to these objections." — Memoirs of Viscount Castlereagh, vol. i. p. 187. w mw » MW mp. ^'7 from being robbed, and in the most shocking manner ill-treated, by those to whom they had a right to look for safety and pro- tection. "Lord Cornwallis declares, that if he finds that the soldiers of any regiment have had opportunities of committing these excesses from the negligence of their officers, he will make those officers answerable for their conduct ; and that if any soldiers are caught either in the act of robbery, or with the articles of plunder in their possession, they shall be instantly tried, and immediate execution shall follow their conviction. "A Provost-Marshal will be appointed, who will, with his guard, march in the rear of the army, and who will patrol about the villages and houses in the neighbourhood of the camp." Lord Cornwallis has been accused of partiality to Ire- land because he would not countenance cruelty, though he could not prevent it. We therefore give other testimony — Captain Taylor wrote from Ballinamore on the 31st of August 1798 :— " We halt here this day to give the Queen's and 29th time to join us : they have made a most expeditious march from Wex- ford, and will be at Ballinasloe this day. We shall proceed towards Tuam to-morrow, and they will march in the same direc- tion. As far as we can learn as yet, the French are still at Castlebar, entrenching themselves, and drilling those of the in- habitants who have joined. Among the latter I fear there are some of the Longford and Kilkenny : those regiments marched to this place yesterday, and upon our arrival were immediately ordered on towards Athlone. Their conduct, and that of the Carabineers and Frazers, in action on the retreat from Castlebar and Tuam, and the depredations they committed on the road, exceed, I am told, all description. Indeed, they have, I believe, raised a spirit of discontent and disaffection which did not before LOUT) CORNWALLIS. 1S5 exist in this part of the country. Every endeavour has been used to prevent plunder in our corps, but it really is impossible to stop it in some of the regiments of militia with us, particularly the light battalions." "With the intelligence of a master mind, and the clear- ness of an unprejudiced mind, Lord Cornwallis studied and fathomed the " Irish difficulty." It would have been well for both countries if counsels like his had prevailed. He saw that the system hitherto pursued was bad;' certainly it had been thoroughly tested, and as certainly it had entirely failed. 6 The following letter deserves consideration even at the present day :— " Marquis Cornwallis to the Duhe of Portland. [Secret and Confidential.] " Dublin Castle, Sept. 16, 1798. " My dear Lord, — If I have not appeared to give my sentiments to your Grace with the utmost freedom, and to speak with the most perfect openness of heart on the subject both of men and measures in this country, I most earnestly request that you will believe that such ap- parent reserve has not proceeded from a want of the most affectionate regard personally to yourself, or the most entire confidence in your up- rightness and honour, but in truth from my not being able to give you opinions which I had not formed, or to explain things which I was not sure that I understood. " The quick succession of important events during the short period of my Lieutenancy has frequently diverted my attention from the pursuit of that great question — How this country can be governed and pre- served, and rendered a source of strength and power, instead of remain- ing a useless and almost intolerable burthen to Great Britain. " Your Grace will not be so sanguine as to expect that I am now going to tell you that I have succeeded in making this discovery. Sorry am I to say, that I have made no fixrther progress than to satisfy myself that, a perseverance in the system, which has hitherto been pursued, can II* li. Protestant ascendancy had been allowed full swing, yet Ireland was not prosperous. Trade had been suppressed vigorously, yet England was not benefited. A few indi- viduals certainly gained by the public loss, and these in- dividuals contrived to impress the English nation with a only lead us from bad to worse, and after exhausting the resources of Britain, must end in the total separation of the two countries. " The principal personages here who have long been in the habit of directing the counsels of the Lords-Lieutenants are perfectly well-in- tentioned, and entirely attached and devoted to the British connection ; but they are blinded by their passions and prejudices, talk of nothing Init strong measures, and arrogate to themselves the exclusive know- ledge of a country, of which, from their mode of governing it, they have, in my opinion, proved themselves totally ignorant. " To these men I have shown all civility and kindness in my power, and have done for them all ordinary favours which they have asked, but I am afraid that they are are not satisfied with me, because I have not thrown myself blindly into their hands. With the Chancellor, who can with patience listen to the words Papist and Moderation, I have in- variably talked on all public points which have occurred, and I have shown no marks of confidence to any other set of men, and have par- ticularly given no countenance whatever to those who opposed the former government. I have at all times received the greatest assist- ance from Lord Castlereagh, whose prudence, talents, and temper, I can- not sufficiently commend. " No man will, I believe, be so sanguine as to think that any mea- sures which government can adopt would have an immediate effect on the minds of the people, and I am by no means prepared to say what those should be, which slowly and progressively tend to that most de- sirable object. '^ I have hitherto been chiefly occupied in checking the growing evil, but so perverse and ungovernable are the tempers here, that I cannot flatter myself that I have been very successful. " With regard to future plans, I can only say that some mode must be adopted to soften the hatred of the Catholics to our government." t)( Nl THE CROMWELL POLICY. 187 terrible fear of losing Ireland, if thej' were not permitted to carry out their selfisli policJ^ Unfortunately, the great mass of Englishmen were utterly ignorant of the true state of Ireland, and had a traditional belief, not easily shaken, that the worst which could be said of her was pro- bably far short of the truth. There were men, even of rank and station, whom nothing could satisfy except a universal massacre of the Irish, who prayed for a second Cromwell ; men who were too com- pletely blinded by prejudice to be capable of reasoning either on the past or the present, — men who could not see, or who would not see, that Cromwell's policy was being enacted, not in one part of Ireland alone, but from the east to the west, wherever English soldiers could be sent. And what had Cromwell's policy done — we will not say for Ireland, because Ireland was not for a moment considered by such persons, — but what had his policy effected in Ire- land for English interests ? Had it decreased the popula- tion of Ireland? For a time, certainly; while the land ran rivers of blood, and women and children lay writhing in death-throes of agony beneath the sword of men who took on them to commit the deadliest crimes in the name of the God of mercy. Was Ireland more contented, more easily satisfied with injustice ? Had the great end been gained of making her submit in silence to her oppressor ? By no means. All history refutes the supposition. What, then, did Crom- m. u THE CURSE OF CROM]YELL. well's policy do for English interests in Ireland ? It simply made them a thousand times more precarious than ever, — it simply left a legacy of undying hatred to those who assisted him in doing his evil ■will. "The curse of Cromwell on you," is to the present day the bitterest imprecation that one Irish peasant can use to another, and the curse of that man's evil deeds will never cease to lie dark and heavy between the English and Irish shores. A century of honest, manly, justice to Ireland might, indeed, help to repair it, — might blot out the darker shades of its iniquity, but it would need some such remedy. If Irish rebels burned and pillaged English yeomen, they had learned the lesson from Cromwell. He massacred the defenceless from the pure love of blood and cruelty ; they did but strive to defend the defenceless in such fashion as they could.^ f We happen to know that the Cromwell theory has not died out yet. It has, at least, the merit of simplicity, but it would be a little difficult of execution in this nineteenth century, when there would be some millions of Irish in America, "To know the reason why." On the 27th July 1798, Lord Clifdon wrote from Dublin to the Speaker of the English House of Commons : — " There certainly is a great want of discipline, and the strongest spirit of plunder, in the troops. The north is quiet, and will, from all I hear, remain so. They don't like to have their throats cut by the southern Catholics. Some good priests there are, and many loyal Catholics, but the mass of them are rebels, and the iDriests who are infected with this villany excite them to massacre the Protestants as a means, together with the hope of plunder, to drive them on in the rebellion. It is a CoOOCC How defenceless the unhappy Irish peasantry vrere at this period, is evident from a letter of the Marquis of Cornwallis to the Duke of Portland, dated Dublin Castle, June 28, 1798, in which he says : — " The accounts that you see of the numbers of the enemy de- stroyed in every action, are, I conclude, greatly exaggerated ; from mj own knowledge of military affairs, I am sure that a very small proportion of them only could be killed in battle; and I am much afraid that any man in a brown coat, who is found within several miles of the field of action, is butchered without discrimi- nation. " It shall be one of my first objects to soften the ferocity of our troops, which I am afraid, in the Irish corps at least, is not confined to the private soldiers. " I shall use my utmost exertions to suppress the folly which has been too prevalent in this quarter, of substituting the word Catholicism instead of Jacobinism, as the foundation of the present rebellion." On the 1st of July he wrote — " The violence of our friends, and their folly in endeavouring miserable thing to say, but, from all I have seen and know, I am per- fectly convinced that while everything round them has improved, the minds and feelings of the lower class of the Catholics of Ireland are exactly what they were in 1641. This is possible, and what I could not have believed four months ago, nor at all, had I not seen the proof with my own eyes. They are, however, to be brought to reason, as Cromwell brought them then, and by no other means, as the event will prove. In my opinion, a union would be the salvation of both islands." — Diary of Lord Colchester, vol. i. p. 160. It is difficult to understand how the Irish peasantry could have im- proved, when they were neither allowed education nor commerce. JtlUWLHJ 10 190 VIOLENCE— CIVIL AND MILITARY. to make it a religious war, added to the ferocity of our troops who delight in murder, most powerfully counteract all plans of conciliation. " The Irish mQitia are totally without discipline, contemptible before the enemy when any serious resistance is made to them, but ferocious and cruel in the extreme when any poor wretches, either with or without arms, come within their power ; in short, murder appears to be their favourite pastime. " The principal persons of this country, and the members of both Houses of Parliament, are, in general, averse to all acts of clemency, and although they do not express, and perhaps are too much heated to see the ultimate effects which their violence must produce, would pursue measures that could only terminate in the extirpation of the greater number of the inhabitants, and in the utter destruction of the country. The words Papists and Priests are for ever in their mouths, and by their unaccountable policy they would drive four-fifths of the community into irreconcilable rebellion ; and in their warmth they lose sight of the real cause of the present mischief, of that deep-laid conspiracy to revolu- tionise Ireland on the principles of France, which was originally formed, and by wonderful assiduity brought nearly to maturity, by men who had no thought of religion but to destroy it, and who knew how to turn the passions and prejudices of the different sects to the advancement of their horrible plot for the introduc- tion of that most dreadful of all evils, a Jacobin revolution." We have given sufScient English authority to show the state of Ireland at the period of O'Connell's entrance into public life. Many Irish authorities might have been quoted, but we are so fully aware of English misconception of the whole subject, and of the prejudice which exists against the THE HEAOKLETONS. accounts even of Irish Protestants, who have given truthful narratives of the times, that we do not introduce their authority here. But there is one authority little known, and seldom, as far as we are aware, quoted, to which few can object, as likely to be prejudiced unduly on either side — it is that of the gentle and gifted Mary Leadbetter a member of the Society of Friends. Mr Shackleton, Mrs Leadbetter's father, kept a famous school at Ballitore, in the county Kildare. The village lies on the high road to Cork, about twenty miles from Dublin. It was almost a Quaker settlement, but many Irish gentlemen were glad to confide the education of their sons to the conscientious and able schoolmaster. Mrs Leadbetter wrote, amongst other works, "The Annals of Ballitore," in which she gives a charming description of her home. Edmund Burke was educated there, and kept up a life-long correspondence with the Shackletons, honourable alike to master and pupil. His correspondence forms a considerable and most interesting portion of the volume. All was happy in that happy home till the dread hour when the " Irish rising " was put down with merciless cruelty. With a few extracts from Mrs Leadbetter's narra- tive, we conclude this painful subject. The Shackleton family were treated by both sides with consideration, though they had a " green ^ cloth " on their 8 The writer knew a lady, since dead, who was unhappy enough to have seen a young man taken up, and hanged without any trial, or 192 MRS LEADBETTBR'S TESTIMONY. table which they did not remove. We suspect the sympathies of the gentle Friends were rather with the people ; but how could it be otherwise, when the people were always eager to serve them in any way? Their house was visited frequently both by the insurgents and the military. The following are some of the many scenes of horror which Mrs Lead- better records : — " Every one seemed to think that safety and security were to be found in my brother's house. Thither the insurgents brought their prisoners, and thither also their own wounded comrades. It was an awful sight to behold in that large parlour such a mingled assembly of throbbing, anxious hearts ; my brother's own family, silent tears rolling down their faces, the wives of the loyal officers, the wives of the soldiers, the wives and daughters of the insurgents, the numerous guests, the prisoners, the trembling women — all dreading to see the door open, lest some new distress, some fresh announcement of horrors, should enter. It was awful ; but every scene was now awful, and we knew not what a day might bring forth. " Young girls dressed in white, with green ribbons, and carrying pikes, accompanied the insurgents. They had patrols and a countersign, but it was long before they could decide upon the password. even attempt at a trial, simply because lie wore a necktie wliicli was partly green. One of the favourite ballads of the period, and which indeed is still sung by the peasants, alludes to this as a common practice. " The Wearing of the Green" is perhaps one of the most soul-stirring of all the Irish rebel-songs — • " Oh ! such a wretched country As this was never seen, For they're hanging men and women, For the wearing of the green." " At length they fised upon the word " scourges." Sentinels were placed in various parts of the village. One day as I went to my brothers, a sentinel called to a man who walked with me not to advance on pain of being shot. The sentinel was my former friend " the Canny." I approached him, and asked, would he would shoot me if I proceeded 1 " Shoot you ! " exclaimed he, taking my hand and kissing it, adding a eulogium on the Quakers. "I told him it would be well if they were all of our way of thinking, for then there would be no such work as the present. I thought I could comprehend " the Canny's " incoherent answer, "Ay! but you know our Saviour — the scourges, oh! the scourges ! " Then raising himself in his stirrups, he revoked the orders given to his men to fire' upon every man in coloured clothes. Oh, rash and cruel orders, which exposed to such danger lives of such value, which if thus sacrificed no regrets could have restored ! Nothing can justify such commands. " Soldiers came in for milk ; some of their countenances were pale with anger, and they grinned at me, calling me names which I had never heard before. They said I had poisoned the milk which I gave them, and desired me to drink some, which I did with much indignation. Others were civil, and one inquired if we had had any United Irishmen in the house. I told them we had. In that fearful time the least equivocation, the least deception, appeared to me to be fraught with danger. The soldier continued his inquiry — ' Had they plundered us ? ' ' No, except of eating and drinking.' ' Oh, free quarters,' he replied, smiled and went away. A fine looking man, a soldier, came in in an extravagant passion ; neither his rage nor my terror could prevent me from observing that this man was strikingly handsome ; he asked me the same questions in the same terms, and I made the same answer. He MRS LEADBETTER'S TESTIMONY. cursed me with great bitterness, and raising his musket, presented it to my breast. I desired him not to shoot me. It seemed as if he had the will but not the power to do so. He turned from me, dashed pans and jugs off the kitchen table with his musket, and shattered the kitchen window. Terrified almost out of my wits, I ran out of the house, followed by several women almost as much frightened as myself. When I fled my fears gained strength, and I believed my enemy was pursuing ; I thought of throwing myself into the river at the foot of the garden, thinking the bullet could not hurt me in the water. One of our servants ran into the street to call for help. William Richardson and Charles Coote, who kindly sat on their horses outside our windows, came in and turned the ruffian out of the liouse. That danger passed, I beheld from the back window of our parlour the dark-red flames of Gavin's house, and others, rising above the green of the trees. At the same time, a fat tobacconist from Carlow lolled upon one of our chairs, and talked boastingly of the exploits performed by the military whom he had accompanied ; how they had shot several, adding, ' We burned one fellow in a barrel.' I never in my life felt disgusted so strongly ; it even overpowered the horror due to the deed which had been actually committed." f^ PfZ^i Doiaeeie C|agte Jfiftlj. TEE BAB AND POLITICS. 1798-1801. FIRST OIKCDIT — AT THE BAE — JEEBY KELLEE — BAR STOEIES — PKOMISE OF StTC- OESS CLEAR IDEAS OF FOX — THE IRISH PARLIAMENT — THE UNION — ' POLICY OF PITT — BEIBERY — THE PRIESTS — CONCUSSION IN VOTING LETTER OF MR LUKE FOX — THE BAR AND THE UNION — " THE ANTI-UNION " — FIRST SPEECH ANTI-UNION RESOLUTIONS — PERSONAL APPEAEANCE -^ GEATTAN AND PITT PERSONAL DANGER. discomfort, wandering about and unable to eat. At last, when I could no longer battle it out, I gave up and went to bed. Old Doctor Moriarty was sent for ; he pronounced me in a high fever. I was in such pain that I wished to die. In my ravings I fancied that I was in the middle of a wood, and that the branches were on fire around me. I felt my backbone stiifening for death, and I positively declare that I think what saved me was the effort I made to rise up, and show my father, who was at my bedside, that I knew him. I verily believe that effort of nature averted death. During my illness I used to quote from the tragedy ol Douglas these lines — ' Unknown I die ; no tongiie shall speak of me ; Some noble spirits, judging by themselves, May yet conjecture what I might have proved ; And think life only wanting to my fame.' I used to quote those lines under the full belief that my illness would end fatally. Indeed, long before that period — when I was seven years old — yes, indeed, as long as ever I can recollect, I always felt a presentiment that I should write my name on the page of history. I hated Saxon domination. I detested the tyrants of Ireland. During the latter part of my illness. Doctor Moriarty told me that Buonaparte had got his whole army to Alexandria, across the desert. ' That is impossible,' said I, ' he cannot have done so ; they would have starved.' ' Oh, no,' re- plied the doctor, 'they had a quantity of portable soup with them, sufficient to feed the whole army for four days.' ' Ay,' rejoined I, ' but had they portable water ? For their portable soup would have been of little use if they had not water to dis- solve it in.' My father looked at the attendants with an air of hope. Doctor Moriarty said to my mother, 'His intellect, at any rate, is untouched.' " This illness occurred in August 1798, and immediately after his recovery he went on circuit. Of this event he has also left a record, or rather the record as given by him- self has been preserved by his faithful friend Mr Daunt. Travelling then in Kerry,^ or indeed in any part of the world, was by no means the easy and rapid affair it is now. O'Connell left home at four o'clock in the morning on horseback, accompanied by his brother John, who was bound for the more congenial occupation of hunting. O'Connell was passionately fond of sport, and tenderly attached to his whole family, so that the parting had a double pang. We give the remainder of the narrative in O'Connell's own words : — " I looked after him, from time to time, until he was out of sight, and then I cheered up my spirits as well as I could; I had left home at such an early hour, that I was in Tralee at half-past ° Until the year 1825, when the Limerick maU-ooach was established, post-chaises, sometimes of the rudest construction, were the only means of conveyance. Two well-known Tralee characters, Davy Dog and Jack Hackney, kept these coaches, and with rope shrouds rigged under the bodies of them to assist or preserve the springs. They took six or seven hours going from Tralee to Listowel — a distance of eighteen miles — stopped there that night, the next day journeying as far as Newbridge, where another night was spent, and the third day they reached Lime- rick. The journey between Tralee and Limerick is performed at present by rail in about five hours. The first four-horse mail was driven into Kerry from Cork on the 11th of August 1810, by old Mich Daly, a famous Jehu, whose chirrup was the delight of his horses, and who made the noble and creditable boast that " a ha'porth of whipcord " would last a twelvemonth. He had a theory, rather old-fashioned, we must fear, that " beating horses was not driving them." He proved his theory by practice, and we sincerely wish we had a few more imitators. But good driving requires some intellectual effort ; and brute force, which the prosecutions of the 200 "YOU'LL DO, TOUNO GENTLEMAN." twelve. I got my horse fed, and, thinking it was as well to push on, I remounted him, and took the road to Tarbert by Listowell. A few miles further on, a shower of rain drove me under a bridge for shelter. While I stayed there, the rain sent Eobert Hickson also under the bridge. He saluted me, and asked me where I was going 1 I answered, ' To Tarbert.' — ' Why so late ? ' said Hickson. ' I am not late,' said I. ' I have been up since four o'clock this morning.' — 'Why, where do you come from?' — 'From Carhen.' Hickson looked astonished, for the distance was near fifty Irish miles. But he expressed his warm approval of my activity. ' You'll do, young gentleman,' said he ; ' I see you'll do.' I then rode on, and got to Tarbert about five in the afternoon — full sixty miles Irish from Carhen. There wasn't one book to be had at the inn. I had no acquaintance in the town ; and I felt my spirits low enough at the prospect of a long, stupid even- ing. But I was relieved by the sudden appearance of Ealph Society for the Prevention of Cruelty to Animals shows to be very much in vogue at the other side of the Channel, is within the reach of every man, however degraded, who has a strong arm. I'he judges in the eighteenth century at least, travelled direct from Limerick to Tralee, and were particular about the state of the roads, for they fined the county Kerry one himdred pounds for not keeping the " great circuit road " in proper repair. The first hotel of any importance in Tralee was set up by Dick Thornton, and was styled the Denny Arms. Dick, as usual in such cases, was a retired servant He had been coachman to Sir Barry Denny, but having become incapacitated for that position by a fall from his seat of authority, the coach-box — he was set up as hotel-keeper, and provided with a wooden leg. The Blennerhassets, too, had their hotel, conducted by Sam Benner, who was also a post-master, and is said to have advanced the art of locomotion by his strenuous efforts to keep up and improve his busi- ness. Paddy Devine represented the Crosbie interest. His hotel, as in duty bound, was called the Crosbie Arms. He is reported to have been an extensive farmer, and, moreover, kept race-horses. Marshall, an old friend of mine, who came to the inn to dress fo. a ball that took place in Tarbert that night. He asked me to accompany him to the ball. ' Why,' said I, ' I have ridden sixty miles.' ' Oh, you don't seem in the least tired,' said he, ' so come along.' Accordingly I went, and sat up until two o'clock in the morning, dancing." A few hours' sleep was sufficient to refresh the hardy youth, and he rode off to the Limerick assizes to make his first public appearance as a barrister. How little he could have anticipated, as he rode quietly and unnoticed into the grand old city of the Violated Treaty,^ and glanced at the stone which commemorates Irish bravery and English bad faith, how triumphantly he should one day be received there himself! He at once distinguished himself as a cross-examiner, which was undoubtedly his giesit forte at the bar. This department of the legal profession requires a tact and talent peculiar to itself, and which is often wanting in those who were gifted in other ways with the highest forensic ability. Woe to the unhappy man who gets into the witness box with a secret ; he might make a thousand resolutions to keep it to himself, — he might succeed with some cross-examiners, but certainly not when O'Connell was counsel. He laughed, he cajoled, he rarely threatened, he began a ^ The particxdars of the Violated Treaty are too well-kriowii to need more than a passing allusion. It is certainly one of the ■worst breaches of faith on record. H* 1 ¥i EXAMINING A WITNESS. cheerful conversation in most confidential terms. The half- pleased, half-bewildered witness " did not know where he was." This agreeable gentleman surely could have no ulterior designs in all this. Precisely when the unhappy man was thoroughly off his guard, out came the question. It was generally answered with a second's hesitation, and O'Connell sat down triumphant. He had a singular facility, a gift which cannot be ac- quired by any amount of practice, of seizing the salient points of a subject at one glance. He not only asked well, but he knew exactly what to ask. In ten minutes he would extract as much information from a witness, as a more practised but less gifted barrister would attain in half an hour. At the Tralee assizes he held a brief from Jerry Keller, a noted attorney. O'Connell had to examine a witness about whose sobriety there was some question. The wit- ness would not convict himself. He declared he had his " share of a pint of whisky." His sobriety depended on the amount of the " share." O'Connell asked him by virtue of his oath, was not his share all but the pewter ; and amid a roar of laughter the unhappy victuu of forensic dexterity was obliged to admit that it was. O'Connell, in relating the story afterwards, said, " The oddity of my mode of putting the question was very successful, and created a general and hearty laugh. Jerry Keller repeated the encouragement Robert Hickson had already bestowed .-^■. 3: !^^ upon my activity, in the very same words, ' You '11 do, young gentleman ! you '11 do/' " Mr Hickson's history was a curious exemplification of the state of the times. He turned Protestant to save his property, and was twice High Sheriff of Kerry. When the penal code was relaxed, he went back to his old faith to save his conscience, having, however, first made very sure that this proceeding would not injure his temporal pro- sperity. O'Connell used to tell some capital bar stories. " The cleverest rogue in the profession that ever I heard of," he said, on one occasion, " was one Checkley, familiarly known by the name of ' Checkley-be-d — d.' Checkley was agent once at the Cork assizes for a fellow accused of burglary and aggravated assault committed at Bantry. The noted Jerry Keller was coun- sel for the prisoner, against whom the charge was made out by the clearest circumstantial evidence; so clearly, that it seemed quite impossible to doubt his guilt. When the case for the pro- secution closed, the judge asked if there were any witnesses for the defence. ' Yes, my lord,' said Jerry Keller, ' I have three briefed to me.' ' Call them,' said the judge. Checkley immedi- ately bustled out of court, and returned at once, leading in a very respectable-looking, farmer-like man, with a blue coat and gilt buttons, scratch wig, corduroy tights, and gaiters. ' This is a witness to character, my lord,' said Checkley. Jerry Keller (the counsel) forthwith began to examine the witness. After asking him his name and residence, 'You know the prisoner in the dock t ' said Keller. . ' Yes, your honour, ever since he was a gorsoon ! ' ' And what is his general character 1 ' said Keller. ' Ogh, the devil a worse ! ' ' Why, what sort of a witness is this you 've brought 1 ' cried Keller, passionately, flinging down his brief, and »\ looking furiously at Cheokley ; ' he has ruined us ! ' ' He may prove an alibi, however,' returned Checkley; 'examine him to alibi as instructed in your brief.' Keller accordingly resumed his examination. ' Where was the prisoner on the 10th instant?' said he. ' He was near Castlemartyr,' answered the witness. ' Are you sure of that 1 ' ' Quite sure, counsellor ! ' ' How do you know with such certainty?' 'Because upon that very night I was returning from the fair, and when I got near my own house, I saw the prisoner a little way on before me — I 'd swear to him anywhere. He was dodging about, and I knew it could be for no good end. So I slipped into the field, and turned off my horse to grass ; and while I was watching the lad from behind the ditch, I saw him pop across the wall into my garden and steal a lot of parsnips and carrots ; and, what I thought a great dale worse of, he stole a bran-new English spade I had got from my landlord. Lord Shannon. So, faix ! I cut away after him, but as I was tired from the day's labour, and he being fresh and nimble, I wasn't able to ketch him. But next day my spade was seen surely in his house, and that 's the same rogue in the dock ! I wish I had a hoult of him.' ' It is quite evident,' said the judge, that we must acquit the prisoner ; the witness has clearly estab- lished an alibi for him ; Castlemartyr is nearly sixty miles from Bantry ; and he certainly is anything but a partisan of his. Pray, friend,' addressing the vntness, ' will you swear informations against the prisoner for his robbery of your property 1 ' ' Troth I will, my lord ! with all the pleasure in life, if your lordship thinks I can get any satisfaction out of him. I 'm tould I can for the spade, but not for the carrots and parsnips.' ' Go to the Crown Office and swear informations,' said the judge. " The prisoner was of course discharged, the alibi having clearly been established ; in an hour's time some inquiry was made as to whether Checkley's rural witness had sworn informations in the Crown Office. That gentleman was not to be heard of: the prisoner also had vanished immediately on being discharged — and of course resumed his mal-practices forthwith. It needs OooOfiC piprric^p^ hardly be told, that Lord Shannon's soi-disant tenant dealt a little in fiction, and that the whole story of his farm from that nobleman, and of the prisoner's thefts of the spade and the vegetables, was a pleasant device of Mr Checkley's. I told this story," continued O'Connell, " to a coterie of English barristers with whom I dined ; and it was most diverting to witness their astonishment at Mr Checkley's unprincipled ingenuity. Stephen Eice, the assistant barrister, had so high an admiration of this clever rogue, that he declared he would readily walk fifty miles to see Checkley ! " The Tralee court-house was the scene of some curious episodes. One of these was thus related by O'Connell : — " O'Grady was on one occasion annoyed at the disorderly noise in the court-house at Tralee. He bore it quietly for some time, expecting that Denny (the High Sherifi') would interfere to restore order. Finding, however, that Denny, who was reading in his box, took no notice of the riot, O'Grady rose from the bench, and called out to the studious High Sheriff, ' Mr Denny, I just got up to hint that I 'm afraid the noise in the court will prevent you from reading your novel in quiet.' " After O'Grady had retired from the bench, some person placed a large stuffed owl on the sofa beside him. The bird was of enor- mous size, and had been brought as a great curiosity from the tropics. O'Grady looked at the owl for a moment, and then said with a gesture of peevish impatience, ' Take away that owl ! take away that owl ! If you don't, I shall fancy I am seated again on the Exchequer Bench beside Baron Foster ! ' " Those who have seen Baron Foster on the bench, can best appreciate the felicitous resemblance traced by his venerable brother judge between his lordship and an old stufied owl.' " Judge O'Grady was by no means deficient in wit. Mr Purcell O' Gorman, previously to emancipation, was one of the most violent out-and-out partisans of the Catholic party. He often declared that I did not go far enough. We were once standing together in , WUtMJ fwfgaW tlie inn at Ennis, and I took up a prayer-book which lay in the window, and said, kissing it, ' By virtue of this book, I will not take place or office from the Government, until emancipation is carried. Now, Purcell, my man 1 will you do as much ? ' Purcell O'Gorman put the book to his lips, but immediately put it away, saying, ' I won't swear ; I needn't ! my word is as good as my oath — I am sure of my own fidelity ! ' When Chief Baron O'Grady heard this story, he remarked, 'They were both quite right. Go- vernment has nothing worth O'Connell's while to take, until emancipation be carried ; but anything at all would be good enough for Purcell O'Gorman.' " Some waggish barrister having accused Nicholas Purcell O'Gorman of being a musician, the charge was stoutly denied by the accused person. " A jury," said O'Connell, " was thereupon impannelled to try the defendant, who persisted in pleading 'Not guilty' to the indictment for melodious practices. The jury consisted of Con Lyne, under twelve different aliases — such as ' Con of the Seven Bottles,' ' Con of the Seven Throttles,' ' Crim-Con,' and so forth. The prosecutor then proceeded to interrogate the defen- dant : — ' By virtue of your oath, Mr O'Gorman, did you never play on any musical instrument 1 ' — ' Never, on my honour ! ' re- plied Purcell. ' Come, sir, recollect yourself. By virtue of your oath, did you never play second fiddle to O'Connell ? ' — The fact was too notorious to admit of any defence, and the unanimous jury accordingly returned a verdict of guilty." O'Connell once received a singular compliment from one of his clients whom he had unsuccessfully defended for cow-stealing — " I was once," said he, " counsel for a cow-stealer, who was clearly convicted — the sentence was transportation for fourteen years. At the end of that time he returned, and happening to meet me, he began to talk about the trial. I asked him how he LESSOiV IN COW-STEALING GRATIS. 207 had always managed to steal the fat cows ; to which he gravely answered : — ' Why, then, I'll tell your honour the whole secret of that, sir. Whenever your honour goes to steal a cov), always go on the worst night you can, for if the weather is very bad, the chances are that nobody will be up to see your honour. The way you '11 always know the fat cattle in the dark is by this token — that the fat cows always stand out in the more exposed places, but the lean ones always go into the ditch for shelter.' So," continued O'Connell, "I got that lesson in cow-stealing gratis from my worthy client." O'Connell visited Limerick, Cork, and Tralee in this circuit. He tlien posted to Dublin with Harry Deane G-rady. The journey was long and dangerous.^ The rebellion had been crushed by brute force, but the fire was still smoulder- ing, and bands of hunted men, who were unable to work, because there was no work for them to do, and who could at best sell their lives dearly, haunted the mountains in 2 O'Connell often contrasted the rapid mode of modern travelling with the slower movements of past days. " I remember," said he, " when I left Darrynane for London in 1795, my first day's journey was to Carhen — my second to Killorglin — my third to Tralee — my fourth to Limerick — two days thence to Dublin. I sailed from Dublin in the evening — my passage to Holyhead was performed in twenty-four hours ; from Holyhead to Chester, took six-and-thirty hours ; from Chester to London, three days. My uncle kept a diary of a tour he made in England be- tween the years '70 and '80, and one of his memorabilia was ' This day we have travelled thirty-six miles, and passed through part of five counties.' In 1780, the two members for the county of Kerry sent to Dublin for a noddy, and travelled together in it from Kerry to Dublin. The journey occupied seventeen days ; and each night the two members quartered themselves at the house of some friend ; and on the seven- teenth day they reached Dublin, just in time for the commencement of the session. I remember in 1817 dodging for eight hours about Caernar- 208 JACK OF THE ROADS. different parts of Ireland. Every man's hand was against them, and their hand was against every man. A party had taken up their abode in the Kilworth moun- tains through which O'Connell and his companion were obliged to pass. In the evening, while resting at the Fermoy inn, four dragoons came in, one of whom was a corporal. O'Connell and his companion were anxious to provide them- selves with ammunition, but this was by no means easy to obtain. Mr Grady opened negotiations with the corporal — " Soldier, will you sell me some powder and ball ? " " Sir, I don't sell powder," replied the corporal, who in his own opinion was no soldier. "Will you then have the goodness to buy me some?" said Grady; "in these unsettled times the dealers in the article are reluctant to sell it to strangers like us." " Sir," replied the corporal, " I am no man's messenger but the king's — go yourself." " Grady," said O'Connell in a low tone, " you have made a great mistake. Did you not see by the mark on his sleeve that von Harbour before we could land. Wben on sbore, I proceeded to rp Capelcarrig, where I was taken very ill ; and J was not consoled by re- flecting that should my illness threaten life, there was no CathoUc priest within forty miles of me." Among other illustrations of the state of things in the good old days of Tory rule, he recorded the fate of a poor half-witted creature called " Jack of the roads," who, in the earlier part of the century, used to run alongside the Limerick coaches : — " He once made a bet of fourpence and a pot of porter that he wo^"dd run to Dublin from Limerick, keeping pace with the mail. He did so, and when he .■^iiaW was passing through Mountrath on his retxirn, on the 12th of July 1807 or 1808, he flourished a green bough at a party of Orangemen who were holding their orgies. One of them fired at his face ; his e3-es were de- stroyed — he lingered and died — and there was an end of poor Jack." the man is a corporal 1 You mortified his pride in calling him a soldier, especially before his own men, amongst whom he doubt- less plays the officer." Having suffered a few minutes to elapse, O'Connell entered into conversation with the dragoon : " Did you ever see such rain as we had to-day, sergeant? I was very glad to find that the regulars had not the trouble of escort- ing the judges. It was very suitable work for those awkward yeomen." " Yes, indeed, sir," returned the corporal, evidently flattered at being mistaken for a sergeant, " we were very lucky in escaping those torrents of rain." " Perhaps, sergeant, you will have the kindness," continued O'Connell, " to buy me some powder and ball in town. We are to pass the Kilworth mountains, and shall want ammunition. You can, of course, find no difficulty in buying it ; but it is not to every one they sell these matters." " Sir," said the corporal, " I shall have great pleasure in re- questing your acceptance of a small supply of powder and ball. My balls will, I think, just fit your pistols. You'll stand in need of ammunition, for there are some of those out-lying rebelly rascals on the mountains." " Dan," said Grady, in a low tone, " you'll go through the world successfully, that I can easily foresee.'" And Dan did go through the world successfully. ' The last remaining robber was shot about the j'ear 1810, by the . postmaster of Fermoy. Several persons had been robbed a short time previously ; whereupon the postmaster and another inhabitant of Fer- moy hired a chaise and drove to the mountains of Kilworth. The robber spied the chaise, came to rob, upon which the postmaster shot Viim dead. " There was," said O'Connell, " a narrow causeway thrown across a glen, which formed a pecul iarly dangerous part of the old road ; it was KJUMUIJ nnrmm O'Connell's first speecli was made in opposition to the union. Fortunately a copy of this most important docu- ment has been preserved. It was the key-note to O'Connell's political life, and from this first declaration of his principles he never departed or swerved for a second. His family were against him, and especially his uncle Maurice, to whom he owed his education. Political life was a dangerous game, and a losing one, and old " Hunting- cap," though he lived all his life in the wilds of Kerry, knew undefended hj guard- walls, and too narrow for two carriages to pass abreast. The post-boys used to call it 'the delicate bit ; ' and a ticklish spot it surely was on. a dark night, approached at one end from a steep declivity." O'Connell used to tell a good story of his friend Harry Grady — " I remember a good specimen of his skill in cross-examination at an assizes at Tralee, where he defended some still-owners who had recently had a scuffle with five soldiers. The soldiers were witnesses against the still- owners. Harry Grady cross-examined each soldier in the following manner, out of hearing of his brethren, who were kept out of court ; — ' Well, soldier, it was a murderous scuffle, wasn't it t ' — ' Yes.' — ' But you weren't afraid ? ' — ' No.' — ' Of course you weren't. It is part of your sworn duty to die in the king's service if needs must. But, if i/ou were not afraid, maybe others were not quite so brave ? Were any of your comrades frightened ? Tell the truth now.'—' Why, indeed, sir, I can't say but they were.' — 'Ah, I thought so. Come, now, name the men who were frightened — on your oath, now.' " The soldier then named every one of his four comrades. He was then sent down, and another soldier called upon the table, to whom Grady addressed precisely the same set of queries, receiving precisely the same answers ; until at last he got each of the five soldiers to swear, that lie alone had fought the still-owners bravely, and that all his four comrades were cowards. Thus Harry succeeded in utterly discrediting the soldiers' evidence against his clients." quite enough of public affairs to make him anxious to Darrynane in the family, and to keep young Dan's head on his shoulders. But young Dan was thoroughly capable of taking care of himself, and he continued to steer through the difficult period of the Union without any personal in- convenience. The Union was formally brought before the English Houses of Parliament by messages from the Crown on the 22d of January 1799, but Mr Pitt had laid his plans for it as far back as 1784, when he came into office. He set himself to work with that steady determination which is the best promise of success, and with that unscrupulous disregard of justice which generally serves for a time. The difficulties he met with, and probably the steady opposition of his powerful rival, Fox, were a further incentive. Fox had very clear ideas of Irish policy for an English statesman. He saw that the divisions of the Irish them- selves — those divisions with which they have been so fre- quently taunted, and which are so little understood — were the principal cause of the misfortunes of this unhappy country. He could not understand why Irish politicians would not work together,* and forgot that English poli- " Feh-uary 8th, 1799. ■> " If the Irish would stick to one another, they might play a game that would have more chance of doing good, than any that has been in r[uestion for a long time. They might win the battle that we lost in 1784, and which after all is the pivot upon which everything turns. They ought h N n 7^ S^S" ticians were equally, thougli not so disastrously divided. He did not understand, what we fear has never yet heen thoroughly understood, the state of government in Ireland, and why Irishmen were disunited, or only united in parties to oppose each other. The only attempt at a Republican government in Ire- land had been the Parliament of Kilkenny, held by the Confederates in 1645. It was certainly some sort of satis- faction to the nation at large to feel that they had any kind of national representation ; the meeting of a Parliament in Dublin gave a certain appearance of status to the country, but it was only an appearance. The members of both Houses were, with a very few exceptions, members of the English Government; the nation was not represented. Ireland was a Catholic nation, yet not one single Catholic could raise his voice in that assembly. Irishmen were allowed to vote, and after a time Catholics were allowed to vote nominally; but the vote was only nominal, it was little more than a badge of slavery ; for woe to the free- holder who dared to have an opinion of his own ! woe to the "independent elector" who availed himself of his supposed independence. The majority, the vast majority, of those who sat in the to be very careful to confine themselves, however, to Irish ministers, and great officers in Ireland, and they would be in no danger (unless I am very much deceived indeed) of being deserted by the people, as we were." — Fox^s Letters, vol. iv. p. 157. THE NATIONAL REPRESENTATION. 213 Irish House of Lords, and the Irish House of Commons, were men who had no Irish interests whatever, who, far from having such interests, actually hated and scorned the men whom they were supposed to represent. They had one god, and they worshipped him with unfailing devotion — for him they were ready to sacrifice honour, principle, and self-respect; for him they were willing to imhrue their hands in the very life-blood of the unhappy men whose interests they were supposed to represent.* Pitt knew perfectly well the difficulties he would have to meet in effecting his purpose. He had four classes to deal with, and he dealt with them one by one with a masterly ability worthy of a better cause. " Fox wrote to Lord Holland on the 19th. of January 1799 : — "I own I think, according to the plan with which you have set out, that you ought to attend the Union ; nor do I feel much any of your ohjeo- tions, I mean to attendance, for in all those to the Union I agree with you entirely. If it were only for the state of representation in their House of Commons, I should object to it ; but when you add the state of the country, it is the most monstrous proposition that ever was made. What has given rise to the report of my being for it I cannot guess, as exclusive of temporary objections I never had the least Kking to the measure, though I confess I have less attended to the arguments pro and con than perhaps I otherwise should have done, from a full conviction that it was completely impossible. You know, I dare say, that my general principle in politics is very much against the one and indivisible, and if I were to allow myself a leaning to any extreme it would be to that of Federalism. Pray, tlierefore, when ever you hear my opinion men- tioned, declare for me my decided disapprobation ; not that I would have my wish to have this known a reason for yoiir attendance, however, if otherwise you wish to stay away." — Fox's Correspondeiice, voL iv. p. 150 3t% JJ ^1C m 41 It J'li, lie had to deal with the people of Ireland, with those units who are considered so insignificant when counted by ones, who are so terribly formidable when you come to add the ones, and discover that they amount to millions. A multitude is terribly formidable even without leaders, even when they are held in chains. The English minister knew this, and crushed the multitude. If it did cost some millions of money, what matter ! his was an extravagant administration, and he hoped to revenge himself after the Union. As to the lives, the agony, the legacy of hatred, all that " went without saying." Perhaps he deplored the blood and crime a little, not having the brutal nature of Cromwell, who delighted in it, but he consoled himself with the reflection that state policy requires sacrifice. The benefit of England was the one grand object.® It '' This was no secret. In 1699, Sir Eiohard Cox wrote a work, en- titled " The Englist Interest in Ireland," proposing a Union in the fol- lowing words : — " It is your iaterest to unite and incorporate us with England ; for by that means the English interest will always he prevalent here, and the kingdom as secure to you as Wales, or any county in England. Youl taxes will be lessened when loe hear part of the hurden. . . . All out money will still centre at London; and our trade and communication with England will be so considerable, that we shall think ourselves at home when there ; and where one goes thither now, then ten will go when all our business is transacted in your Parliament, to which, if we send sixty-four knights for our thirty-two counties, ten lords, and six bishops, they may spend our money, but cannot influence your councils to your disadvantage. . . . By the Union, England will get much of (mr money, and abundance of our trade." This man was a specimen of the class of men who carried the Union Ms^ \i ,1] IRELAND A BEPENBENOT. 215 was riglit, it was more than justifiable that Englishmen should seek the advancement of their own nation ahove all things, but they were equally bound in common honesty either to treat Irish interests as synonymous with their own, or to leave Ireland perfectly free to look after her own interests. It was not just to treat her as a dependency, or rather as a country which was to be used solely for the interests of those who had made themselves her masters by force of arms. Fox was probably the only English statesman of his time who had thoroughly clear ideas as to the duty and the good policy of making English and Irish interests coincide. He held and expressed strong views as to the power of the people, and was decidedly of opinion that Parliament could not make a Union between the two countries either with legal or moral right, unless Parliament had the sanction of the people. *' Supposing the Stamp Act were beneficial to America, or who represented Ireland. Thiougli Irish by birth, his interests were wholly English. In 1751, Sir Matthew Dicker wrote " Essays on Trade," in which he said : — " By a union with Ireland the taxes of Great Britain will be les- sened." In 1767, Postlethwayte wrote a work, entitled " Britain's Com- mercial Interest," in which he said : " By the Union, Ireland would soon be enabled to pay a million a year towards the taxes of Great Britain ; the riches of Ireland would chieiiy return to England, she containing the seat of empire ; the Irish lairds would be little better than tenants to her, for allowing them the privilege of making the best of their rela- tions."— P. 203. 216 FOX ON THE UiYIOiV. Parliameut was not competent in any sense of the word to enact it. Supposing a Union would be beneficial to Ireland, Parliament again is not competent to enact it, because it is not within its commission to destroy the con- stitution which it is instituted to support, even though it should place a better in its stead ; and here comes in with propriety what Locke says, that Parliament is to make laws and not legislatures. I cannot think, for instance, that Parliament is competent to declare Great Britain an absolute monarchy, or a republic, though it should be of opinion that the change would be for the better. For such revolutions there must be a known opinion of the people, and though such opinion be difficult to collect legally, yet for practical purposes it may be col- lected in a practical way, as I contend that it was, or at least that it was pretended to be, in 1688 and 1706. It is said that this reasoning goes to say, that Parliament, which is instituted to improve, cannot be competent to impair the Constitution ; the answer is, that whether a projected alteration be an improvement or an injury, is a question upon which Parliament is commissioned to judge, but annihilation (which Union must be allowed to be) is not within their commission. That it is annihila- tion, I, of course, suppose proved, before I deny the com- petence." We have seen how Mr Pitt dealt with the people. His mode of dealing with the upper classes was far more simple "m and effective. They wanted money, and he flung it about with reckless prodigality. The sale of boroughs was always a profitable source of income to Anglo-Irish noblemen. They were a needy race, and by no means satisfied with their poverty. In their folly and infatuation they en- couraged the rebellion, forgetting that they were but im- poverishing themselves. They soon learned their fatal mistake, but they had not the wisdom to discern the remedy. It was always hard for the Irish tenant to pay his rent, because he was not allowed a straw for his bricks, though the bricks were required all the same ; but after the rebel- lion there was a deficiency of tenants, and no amount of torture could wring money from the hapless few who re- mained to till the impoverished soil. The circulation of the Bank of Ireland also was discredited, and, of course, the poor were the sufferers. The tenants were obliged to pay in gold when they could be made pay at all, but the scar- city was so great that the tradesmen were paid in paper money, thus throwing the burden still on the people.' ' On the Sth June 1799, Lord Devonshire wrote to Lord Castlereagh : " Whilst I have the pen in my hand, I heg leave to trespass upon your Lordship a little longer, to state a great grievance that this part of the world labours under, which, if possible, ought to be stopped — that is, the sale of the gold coin. When Government thought fit, two or three years ago, to encourage the circulation of bank paper, that traffic began. I gave all the assistance I could to Government in their object, and took bank paper in my office for rent, which I still continue to do, which. 218 BRIBERY AND INCAPABILITY. The bribery system was not made any secret. Gentle- men knew their wortb, and were by no means modest in proclaiming it. If they were to sell honour and conscience, at least they meant to have the full value of both. Lord Cornwallis wrote to Major -General Eoss on the 23d November 1798, and gave some charmingly naive descrip- tions of how affairs were being managed. He was obliged to talk a great deal, and found it a bore. He thought the Catholics might as well have got the benefit of what was going, they, at the very time, being kept under the de- lusion that they were to be included. He declared the Lords-Lieutenant had been idle and incapable, yet Irish- men were wildly blamed if they were not loyal to them ; I believe, none of my neighbours do. I understand Lord Hertford, Lord Donegal, Lord Londonderrj^, &c., never bave and do not take any paper for their rents ; but now I cannot pay a bill to any tradesman in Belfast or the country, in bant notes, without allowing from threepence to eightpence in every guinea. I understand it is the same in the pay of the army. The conduct of the Bant of Ireland is so illiberal, if not illegal, and, besides, take so little pains to stop forgeries upon them, that I shall no longer tate their paper as rent in my office. There is scarce a remittance made to Dublin but two or three notes are returned as forged. They have left off defacing the note, indeed, as they used to do, by which a poor honest man lost eight five-pound notes that my agent recovered for him ; but he had not taten the same precaution my agent did, as the notes were so defaced by an oiled red stamp that he could not swear to the paper, and those that he thought had paid them to him denied that these notes were those they paid him. I have ordered no notes to be taten, till some means are devised to prevent the gross imposition of paying for gold." [\\ ,NI l^ and he declared the whole manner of governing Ireland was founded on the " grossest corruption." On the 27th of April 1799, Lord Cornwallis wrote to the Bishop of Lichfield, giving a wretched picture of the state of Ireland. " This wretched country remains much in the same state, — the seeds of disaffection, of hatred of England, and in particular (and, I am sorry to say, in general with more reason) of their own land- lords, are as deeply rooted as ever, and frequently break out in various shapes, such as the murder of magistrates, or the hough- ing of cattle : our politicians of the old leaven are as much occu- pied with their dirty jobs as ever. Those who think at all of the great question of the Union, confine their speculation to the simple question of its either promoting or counteracting their own private views, and the great mass of the people neither think or care about the matter. Under these circumstances, you will easily conceive how unpleasant my situation must be, and how little I can flatter myself with the hopes of obtaining any credit for myself, or of rendering any essential service to my country. Sincerely do I repent that I did not return to Bengal." » The interested parties were soon satisfied. A sum of £1,260,000 was expended in buying up the boroughs, and with the addition of a few peerages and pensions, the ' Cornwallis Correspondence, vol. 3, p. 93. " My time has lately been much, taken up with seeing, and breaking to the principal persons here, the projected Union, and when you send for a man on such business, he must stay with you and talk to you as long as he likes. I have no great doubts of being able to carry the measure here, but 1 have great apprehensions of the inefficacy of it after it is carried, and I do not think it would have been much more difficult to have included the Catholics. " Those who are called principal persons here, are men who have been ^Sy. ^^^^^._^^^r^. r. ^'prr^f. . .f? 220 BOROVGH-MONOEBING AND CAJOLING. work was done. Lord Devonsliire got £52,500, aud Lord Ely £45,000. Three or four powerful families had the representation of Ireland completely in their power, either by the possession of large property, or by intermarriages. The Ponsonbys had no less than twenty-two seats under their complete control. The Devonshire and Beresford families had almost the same number. Lord Longueville ruled Cork and Mallow with six other places. The principal difficulty was with the Catholic clergy, who could not be bribed, but whom it was quite possible to deceive. The managers of the Union were not particular how the work was effected, with perhaps the exception of Lord Cornwallis, who had some idea of honour even where Papists were concerned. It is to be regretted that the Catholic Bishops, who worked for the Union, did not see some of the private correspondence in which they were mentioned, and did not hear some of the private conversations which have been recorded, and sent down to posterity. Sir J. Hippisley, who was specially employed to cajole the Catholics, wrote to Lord Castlereagh : — " Tlie Speaker told me, some time before, that Mr Pitt had much approved the suggestions I had offered, with respect to the raised into consequence, only by having tlie entire disposal of the pat- ronage of the Crown in return for their undertaking the management of the country, because the Lords-Lieutenant were too idle or too in- capable to management it themselves. They are detested by everj'body but their immediate followers, and have no influence but what is founded on the grossest corruption." — Cornwallis' Correspondence, vol. 3, p. 445. EARL ALTAMONT AND HIS ASSOCIATES. 221 distinctions and checks on the Monastic Clergy. Your Lordship ■will permit me to quote a vulgar Italian proverb, which is this ; — "One must be aware of a bull hefor-e, of an ass at his heels, and of a friar on all sides." Seven years' experience on Catholic ground convinced me that this adage was well imagined." On the 5th of June 1799, the Earl of Altamont wrote from Westport House — " The priests have all appeared to sign, and though I am not proud of many of them as asso- ciates, I will take their signatures to prevent a possibility of a counter declaration." ^ On the 3rd of June 1799, Lord Castlereagh wrote to ' " If the Roman Catholics stand forward, it will be unwillingly; they are keeping back decidedly, but many will be influenced, and some few who connected themselves Avith the Protestants during the disturbance will be zealously forward on the present occasion. The priests have all offered to sign ; and, though I am not proud of many of them as asso- ciates, I will take their signatures, to prevent a possibility of a counter- declaration. I hear the titular Archbishop has expressed himself inclined to the measure. This day, I have sent round to all the CathoUcs of property in the country : I may be mistaken, but, in my judgment, the wish of the most of them would be to stand neuter ; or, perhaps, if they had any countenance, to oppose it — that is the fact. Several will sign from influence, some from fear ; but the majority, I believe, will pretend that they have given opinions already, and can't decently retract them. You shall know exactly when I get to Dublin. Every man applied to, of all persuasions, wants to make it personal compliment." — Memoir of Viscount Castlereagh, vol. ii. p. 328. Mr Cook wrote to Lord Castlereagh at the close of 1798 to inform him of public opinion in Dublin : — " The Dublin argument is this: — Absenteeism will increase— interest of the debt to England will increase — and we cannot bear the drain. Our manufactures will be ruined by putting an end to duties between the two countries. All the proprietors in Dublin must be injured. We shall he liable to British debts," &c. ^ rni m m4 m vJJiGi 222 TIIi; CLERGY AND THE UNION. the Duke of Portland that the rebellion " was managed hy the inferior priests." There were certainly some of the Catholic clergy who united with the rebels in self-defence, but a careful examination of the correspondence of the times will show at once that they were few in number, and that the Government relied much on the co-operation of the priests, even at the very time that many of them were being treated with inhuman cruelty. On the 20th of July 1799, Lord Cornwallis wrote to the Duke of Portland, that the "clergy of the Church, par- ticularly the superior, countenance the measure," and that the linen merchants of the north were much too busy with their trade to think much on the subject.^ If the Catholic 1 These letters are so important an illustration of the state of Ireland at this period that we give further extracts : — " "Within these few days, the Catholics have shown a disposition to depart from their line of neutrality, and to support the measure. Those of the city of Waterford have sent up a very strong declaration in favour of Union, at the same time expressing a hope that it will lead to the accomplishnaeat of their emancipation, as they term it, but not looking to it as a preliminary. The Catholics of Kilkenny have agreed to a similar declaration ; and, as the clergy of that Church, particularly the superiors, countenance the measure, it is likely to extend itself. " In the North, the public opinion is m\Lch divided on the (question. In Derry and Donegal, the gentry are in general well-disposed. The linen merchants are too busily employed in their trade to think much on the subject, or to take an active part on either side ; but I under- stand they are, on the whole, rather favourable, wishing to have their trade secured, which they do not feel, notwithstanding the Speaker's argument, to be independent of Great Britain."— i/cmoi>« of Visemnt Casthreagh, vol ii. p. 351. '. Ii AN UNCONSTITUTIONAL PRACTICE. 223 Bouth had been allowed to trade as well as the Protestant north, and permitted the same liberty of conscience, Eng- land might have saved herself some millions of money. There was some difficulty in Tipperary, and Lord Castle- reagh wrote to the Duke of Portland complaining that the country members had voted against the